Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII | HTML | PDF ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: Samantha Among the Brethren, Complete
Author: Holley, Marietta
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.


*** Start of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "Samantha Among the Brethren, Complete" ***


[Illustration] SAMANTHA

AMONG THE BRETHREN.

BY

“JOSIAH ALLEN’S WIFE”

(MARIETTA HOLLEY).


_WITH ILLUSTRATIONS_.



1890



TO

All Women

WHO WORK, TRYING TO BRING INTO DARK LIVES

THE BRIGHTNESS AND HOPE OF A

BETTER COUNTRY,

_THIS BOOK IS DEDICATED_.



PREFACE.


Again it come to pass, in the fulness of time, that my companion, Josiah
Allen, see me walk up and take my ink stand off of the manteltry piece,
and carry it with a calm and majestick gait to the corner of the settin’
room table devoted by me to literary pursuits. And he sez to me:

“What are you goin’ to tackle now, Samantha?”

And sez I, with quite a good deal of dignity, “The Cause of Eternal
Justice, Josiah Allen.”

“Anythin’ else?” sez he, lookin’ sort o’ oneasy at me. (That man
realizes his shortcomin’s, I believe, a good deal of the time, he duz.)

“Yes,” sez I, “I lay out in petickuler to tackle the Meetin’ House. She
is in the wrong on’t, and I want to set her right.”

Josiah looked sort o’ relieved like, but he sez out, in a kind of a pert
way, es he set there a-shellin corn for the hens:

“A Meetin’ House hadn’t ort to be called she--it is a he.”

And sez I, “How do you know?”

And he sez, “Because it stands to reason it is. And I’d like to know
what you have got to say about him any way?”

Sez I, “That ‘him’ don’t sound right, Josiah Allen. It sounds more right
and nateral to call it ‘she.’ Why,” sez I, “hain’t we always hearn about
the Mother Church, and don’t the Bible tell about the Church bein’
arrayed like a bride for her husband? I never in my life hearn it called
a ‘he’ before.”

“Oh, wall, there has always got to be a first time. And I say it sounds
better. But what have you got to say about the Meetin’ House, anyway?”

“I have got this to say, Josiah Allen. The Meetin’ House hain’t a-actin’
right about wimmen. The Founder of the Church wuz born of woman. It wuz
on a woman’s heart that His head wuz pillowed first and last. While
others slept she watched over His baby slumbers and His last sleep. A
woman wuz His last thought and care. Before dawn she wuz at the door of
the tomb, lookin’ for His comin’. So she has stood ever sense--waitin’,
watchin’, hopin’, workin’ for the comin’ of Christ. Workin’, waitin’ for
His comin’ into the hearts of tempted wimmen and tempted men--fallen men
and fallen wimmen--workin’, waitin’, toilin’, nursin’ the baby good
in the hearts of a sinful world--weepin’ pale-faced over its
crucefixion--lookin’ for its reserection. Oh how she has worked all
through the ages!”

“Oh shaw!” sez Josiah, “some wimmen don’t care about anythin’ but crazy
work and back combs.”

I felt took down, for I had been riz up, quite considerble, but I sez,
reasonable:

“Yes, there are such wimmen, Josiah, but think of the sweet and saintly
souls that have given all their lives, and hopes, and thoughts to the
Meetin’ House--think of the throngs to-day that crowd the aisles of
the Sanctuary--there are five wimmen to one man, I believe, in all the
meetin’ houses to-day a-workin’ in His name. True Daughters of the King,
no matter what their creed may be--Catholic or Protestant.

“And while wimmen have done all this work for the Meetin’ House, the
Meetin’ House ort to be honorable and do well by her.”

“Wall, hain’t _he_?” sez Josiah.

“No, _she_ hain’t,” sez I.

“Wall, what petickuler fault do you find? What has _he_ done lately to
rile you up?”

Sez I, “_She_ wuz in the wrong on’t in not lettin’ wimmen set on the
Conference.”

“Wall, I say _he_ wuz right,” sez Josiah. “_He_ knew, and I knew, that
wimmen wuzn’t strong enough to set.”

“Why,” sez I, “it don’t take so much strength to set as it duz to stand
up. And after workin’ as hard as wimmen have for the Meetin’ House, she
ort to have the priveledge of settin’. And I am goin’ to write out jest
what I think about it.”

“Wall,” sez Josiah, as he started for the barn with the hen feed, “don’t
be too severe with the Meetin’ House.”

And then, after he went out, he opened the door agin and stuck his head
in and sez:

“Don’t be too hard on _him_”

And then he shet the door quick, before I could say a word. But good
land! I didn’t care. I knew I could say what I wanted to with my
faithful pen--and I am bound to say it.

  JOSIAH ALLEN’S WIFE,
  Bonny View,
  near Adams, New York,
  Oct. 14th, 1890.



CONTENTS.

CHAPTER I.

CHAPTER II.

CHAPTER III.

CHAPTER IV.

CHAPTER V.

CHAPTER VI.

CHAPTER VII.

CHAPTER VIII.

CHAPTER IX.

CHAPTER X.

CHAPTER XI.

CHAPTER XII.

CHAPTER XIII.

CHAPTER XIV.

CHAPTER XV.

CHAPTER XVI

CHAPTER XVII

CHAPTER XVIII

CHAPTER XIX

CHAPTER XX

CHAPTER XXI

CHAPTER XXII

CHAPTER XXIII

CHAPTER XXIV

CHAPTER XXV

CHAPTER XXVI

CHAPTER XXVII

CHAPTER XXVIII

_Publishers’ Appendix_



CHAPTER I.


When I first heard that wimmen wuz goin’ to make a effort to set on a
Conference, it wuz on a Wednesday, as I remember well. For my companion,
Josiah Allen, had drove over to Loontown in a Democrat and in a great
hurry, to meet two men who wanted him to go into a speculation with ‘em.

And it wuz kinder curious to meditate on it, that they wuz all deacons,
every one on ‘em. Three on ‘em wuz Baptis’es, and two on ‘em had jined
our meetin’ house, deacons, and the old name clung to ‘em--we spoze
because they wuz such good, stiddy men, and looked up to.

Take ‘em all together there wuz five deacons. The two foreign deacons
from ‘way beyond Jonesville, Deacon Keeler and Deacon Huffer, and
our own three Jonesvillians--Deacon Henzy, Deacon Sypher, and my own
particular Deacon, Josiah Allen.

It wuz a wild and hazardous skeme that them two foreign deacons wuz
a-proposin’, and I wuz strongly in favor of givin’ ‘em a negative
answer; but Josiah wuz fairly crazy with the idee, and so wuz Deacon
Henzy and Deacon Sypher (their wives told me how they felt).

The idee was to build a buzz saw mill on the creek that runs through
Jonesville, and have branches of it extend into Zoar, Loontown, and
other more adjacent townships (the same creek runs through ‘em all).

As near as I could get it into my head, there wuz to be a buzz saw mill
apiece for the five deacons--each one of ‘em to overlook their own
particular buzz saw--but the money comin’ from all  on ‘em to be divided
up equal among the five deacons.

[Illustration: “A WILD AND HAZARDOUS SKEME.”]

They thought there wuz lots of money in the idee. But I wuz very set
against it from the first. It seemed to me that to have buzz saws
a-permeatin’ the atmosphere, as you may say, for so wide a space, would
make too much of a confusion and noise, to say nothin’ of the jarin’
that would take place and ensue. I felt more and more, as I meditated on
the subject, that a buzz saw, although estimable in itself, yet it wuz
not a spear in which a religious deacon could withdraw from the world,
and ponder on the great questions pertainin’ to his own and the world’s
salvation.

I felt it wuz not a spear that he could revolve round in and keep that
apartness from this world and nearness to the other, that I felt that
deacons ought to cultivate.

But my idees wuz frowned at by every man in Jonesville, when I ventured
to promulgate ‘em. They all said, “The better the man, the better the
deed.”

They said, “The better the man wuz, the better the buzz saw he would be
likely to run.” The fact wuz, they needed some buzz saw mills bad, and
wuz very glad to have these deacons lay holt of ‘em.

[Illustration: TALKING OVER THE BUZZ-SAW.]

But I threw out this question at ‘em, and stood by it--“If bein’ set
apart as a deacon didn’t mean anything? If there wuzn’t any deacon-work
that they ought to be expected to do--and if it wuz right for ‘em to
go into any world’s work so wild and hazardous and engrossin’, as this
enterprise?”

And again they sez to me in stern, decided axents, “The better the man,
the better the deed. We need buzz saws.”

And then they would turn their backs to me and stalk away very
high-headed.

And I felt that I wuz a gettin’ fearfully onpopular all through
Jonesville, by my questions. I see that the hull community wuz so sot on
havin’ them five deacons embark onto these buzz saws that they would not
brook any interference, least of all from a female woman.

But I had a feelin’ that Josiah Allen wuz, as you may say, my lawful
prey. I felt that I had a right to question my own pardner for the good
of his own soul, and my piece of mind.

And I sez to him in solemn axents:

“Josiah Allen, what time will you get when you are fairly started on
your buzz saw, for domestic life, or social, or for religious duties?”

And Josiah sez, “Dumb ‘em! I guess a man is a goin’ to make money when
he has got a chance.” And I asked him plain if he had got so low, and if
I had lived with him twenty years for this, to hear him in the end dumb
religious duties.

And Josiah acted skairt and conscience smut for most half a minute, and
said, “he didn’t dumb ‘em.”

“What wuz you dumbin’?” sez I, coldly.

“I wuz dumbin’ the idee,” sez he, “that a man can’t make money when he
has a chance to.”

But I sez, a haulin’ up this strong argument agin--

“Every one of you men, who are a layin’ holt of this enterprise and
a-embarkin’ onto this buzz saw are married men, and are deacons in a
meetin’ house. Now this work you are a-talkin’ of takin’ up will devour
all of your time, every minute of it, that you can spare from your
farms.

“And to say nothin’ of your wives and children not havin’ any chance
of havin’ any comfort out of your society. What will become of the
interests of Zion at home and abroad, of foreign and domestic missions,
prayer meetin’s, missionary societies, temperance meetin’s and good
works generally?”

And then again I thought, and it don’t seem as if I can be mistaken, I
most know that I heerd Josiah Allen mutter in a low voice,

“Dumb good works!”

[Illustration: “I HEERD JOSIAH MUTTER, ‘DUMB GOOD WORKS!’”]

But I wouldn’t want this told of, for I may be mistook. I didn’t fairly
ketch the words, and I spoke out agin, in dretful meanin’ and harrowin’
axents, and sez, “What will become of all this gospel work?”

And Josiah had by this time got over his skare and conscience smite (men
can’t keep smut for more’n several minutes anyway, their consciences are
so elastic; good land! rubber cord can’t compare with ‘em), and he had
collected his mind all together, and he spoke out low and clear, and in
a tone as if he wuz fairly surprised I should make the remark:

“Why, the gospel work will get along jest as it always has, the wimmen
will ‘tend to it.”

And I own I was kinder lost and by the side of myself when I asked the
question--and very anxious to break up the enterprise or I shouldn’t
have put the question to him.

For I well knew jest as he did that wimmen wuz most always the ones to
go ahead in church and charitable enterprises. And especially now, for
there wuz a hardness arozen amongst the male men of the meetin’ house,
and they wouldn’t do a thing they could help (but of this more anon and
bimeby).

There wuz two or three old males in the meetin’ house, too old to get
mad and excited easy, that held firm, and two very pious old male
brothers, but poor, very poor, had to be supported by the meetin’ house,
and lame. They stood firm, or as firm as they could on such legs as
theirs wuz, inflammatory rheumatiz and white swellin’s and such.

But all the rest had got their feelin’s hurt, and got mad, etc., and
wouldn’t do a thing to help the meetin’ house along.

Well, I tried every lawful, and mebby a little on-lawful way to break
this enterprise of theirs up--and, as I heern afterwards, so did Sister
Henzy.

Sister Sypher is so wrapped up in Deacon Sypher that she would embrace a
buzz saw mill or any other enterprise he could bring to bear onto her.

“She would be perfectly willin’ to be trompled on,” so she often sez,
“if Deacon Sypher wuz to do the tromplin’.”

Some sez he duz.

Wall, in spite of all my efforts, and in spite of all Sister Henzy’s
efforts, our deacons seemed to jest flourish on this skeme of theirn.
And when we see it wuz goin’ to be a sure thing, even Sister Sypher
begin to feel bad.

She told Albina Widrig, and Albina told Miss Henn, and Miss Henn told
me, that “what to do she didn’t know, it would deprive her of so much of
the deacon’s society.” It wuz goin’ to devour so much of his time that
she wuz afraid she couldn’t stand it. She told Albina in confidence (and
Albina wouldn’t want it told of, nor Miss Henn, nor I wouldn’t) that she
had often been obleeged to go out into the lot between breakfast and
dinner to see the deacon, not bein’ able to stand it without lookin’ on
his face till dinner time.

And when she was laid up with a lame foot it wuz known that the deacon
left his plowin’ and went up to the house, or as fur as the door step,
four or five times in the course of a mornin’s work, it wuz spozed
because she wuz fearful of forgettin’ how he looked before noon.

She is a dretful admirin’ woman.

She acts dretful reverential and admirin’ towards men--always calls
her husband “the Deacon,” as if he was the one lonely deacon who was
perambulatin’ the globe at this present time. And it is spozed that
when she dreams about him she dreams of him as “the Deacon,” and not as
Samuel (his given name is Samuel).

[Illustration: “THE INITIALS STOOD FOR ‘MISS DEACON SYPHER.’”]

But we don’t know that for certain. We only spoze it. For the land of
dreams is a place where you can’t slip on  your sun-bonnet and foller
neighbor wimmen to see what they are a-doin’ or what they are a-sayin’
from hour to hour.

No, the best calculator on gettin’ neighborhood news can’t even look
into that land, much less foller a neighborin’ female into it.

No, their barks have got to be moored outside of them mysterious shores.

But, as I said, this had been spozen.

But it is known from actual eyesight that she marks all her sheets, and
napkins, and piller-cases, and such, “M. D. S.” And I asked her one day
what the M. stood for, for I ‘spozed, of course, the D. S. stood for
Drusillia Sypher.

And she told me with a real lot of dignity that the initials stood for
“Miss Deacon Sypher.”

Wall, the Jonesville men have been in the habit of holdin’ her up as a
pattern to their wives for some time, and the Jonesville wimmen
hain’t hated her so bad as you would spoze they all would under
the circumstances, on account, we all think, of her bein’ such a
good-hearted little creeter. We all like Drusilly and can’t help it.

Wall, even she felt bad and deprested on account of her Deacon’s goin’
into the buzz saw-mill business.

But she didn’t say nothin’, only wept out at one side, and wiped up
every time he came in sight.

They say that she hain’t never failed once of a-smilin’ on the Deacon
every time he came home. And once or twice he has got as mad as a hen at
her for smilin’. Once, when he came home with a sore thumb--he had jest
smashed it in the barn door--and she stood a-smilin’ at him on the door
step, there are them that say the Deacon called her a “infernal fool.”

But I never have believed it. I don’t believe he would demean himself so
low.

But he yelled out awful at her, I do ‘spoze, for his pain wuz intense,
and she stood stun still, a-smilin’ at him, jest accordin’ to the story
books. And he sez:

“Stand there like a----fool, will you! Get me a _rag!_”

I guess he did say as much as that.

But they say she kept on a-smilin’ for some time--couldn’t seem to
stop, she had got so hardened into that way.

[Illustration: “ONCE, WHEN HER FACE WUZ ALL SWELLED UP, SHE SMILED AT
HIM.”]

And once, when her face wuz all swelled up with the toothache, she
smiled at him accordin’ to rule when he got home, and they say the
effect wuz fearful, both on her looks and the Deacon’s acts. They say he
was mad again, and called her some names. But as a general thing they
get along first rate, I guess, or as well as married folks in general,
and he makes a good deal of her.

I guess they get along without any more than the usual amount of
difficulties between husbands and wives, and mebby with less. I know
this, anyway, that she just about worships the Deacon.

Wall, as I say, it was the very day that these three deacons went to
Loontown to meet Deacon Keeler and Deacon Huffer, to have a conference
together as to the interests of the buzz saw mill that I first heard
the news that wimmen wuz goin’ to make a effort to set on the Methodist
Conference, and the way I heerd on’t wuz as follows:

Josiah Allen brought home to me that night a paper that one of the
foreign deacons, Deacon Keeler, had lent him. It contained a article
that wuz wrote by Deacon Keeler’s son, Casper Keeler--a witherin’
article about wimmen’s settin’ on the Conference. It made all sorts of
fun of the projeck.

We found out afterwards that Casper Keeler furnished nearly all the
capital for the buzz saw mill enterprise at his father’s urgent request.
His father, Deacon Keeler, didn’t have a cent of money of his own; it
fell onto Casper from his mother and aunt. They had kept a big millinery
store in the town of Lyme, and a branch store in Loontown, and wuz great
workers, and had laid up a big property. And when they died, the aunt,
bein’ a maiden woman at the time, the money naturally fell onto Casper.
He wuz a only child, and they had brung him up tender, and fairly
worshipped him.

They left him all the money, but left a anuety to be paid yearly to his
father, Deacon Keeler, enough to support him.

The Deacon and his wife had always lived happy together--she loved to
work, and he loved to have her work, so they had similar tastes, and wuz
very congenial--and when she died he had the widest crape on his hat
that wuz ever seen in the town of Lyme. (The crape was some she had left
in the shop.)

He mourned deep, both in his crape and his feelin’s, there hain’t a
doubt of that.

Wall, Miss Keelerses will provided money special for Casper to be
educated high. So he went to school and to college, from the time he was
born, almost. So he knew plenty of big words, and used ‘em fairly lavish
in this piece. There wuz words in it of from six to seven syllables.
Why, I hadn’t no idee till I see ‘em with my own eye, that there wuz
any such words in the English language, and words of from four to six
syllables wuz common in it.

His father, Deacon Keeler, wouldn’t give the paper to my companion, he
thought so much of it, but he offered to lend it to him, because he said
he felt that the idees it promulgated wuz so sound and deep they ought
to be disseminated abroad.

The idees wuz, “that wimmen hadn’t no business to set on the Conference.
She wuz too weak to set on it. It wuz too high a place for her too
ventur’ on, or to set on with any ease. There wuzn’t no more than room
up there for what men would love to set on it. Wimmen’s place wuz in the
sacred precinks of home. She wuz a tender, fragile plant, that needed
guardin’ and guidin’ and kep by man’s great strength and tender care
from havin’ any cares and labors whatsoever and wheresoever and
howsumever.”

Josiah said it wuz a masterly dockument. And it wuz writ well. It
painted in wild, glarin’ colors the fear that men had that wimmen would
strain themselves to do anything at all in the line of work--or would
weaken her hull constitution, and lame her moral faculties, and ruin
herself by tryin’ to set up on a Conference, or any other high and
tottlin’ eminence.

The piece wuz divided into three different parts, with a headin’ in big
letters over each one.

The _first_ wuz, wimmen to have no labors and cares WHATSOEVER;

_Secondly_, NONE WHERESOEVER;

_Thirdly_, NONE HOWSUMEVER.

The writer then proceeded to say that he would show first, _what_ cares
and labors men wuz willin’ and anxious to ward offen women. And he
proved right out in the end that there wuzn’t a thing that they wanted
wimmen to do--not a single thing.

Then he proceeded to tell _where_ men wuz willin’ to keep their labors
and cares offen wimmen. And he proved it right out that it wuz every
_where_. In the home, the little sheltered, love-guarded home of the
farmer, the mechanic and the artizen (makin’ special mention of the buzz
sawyers). And also in the palace walls and the throne. There and every
_where_ men would fain shelter wimmen from every care, and every labor,
even the lightest and slightest.

Then lastly came the _howsumever_. He proceeded to show _how_ this could
be done. And he proved it right out (or thought he did) that the first
great requisit’ to accomplish all this, wuz to keep wimmen in her
place. Keep her from settin’ on the Conference, and all other tottlin’
eminences, fitted only for man’s stalwart strength.

And the end of the article wuz so sort of tragick and skairful that
Josiah wept when he read it. He pictured it out in such strong colors,
the danger there wuz of puttin’ wimmen, or allowin’ her to put herself
in such a high and percipitous place, such a skairful and dangerous
posture as settin’ up on a Conference.

[Illustration: “JOSIAH WEPT WHEN HE READ IT.”]

“To have her set up on it,” sez the writer, in conclusion, “would
endanger her life, her spiritual, her mental and her moral growth. It
would shake the permanency of the sacred home relations to its downfall.
It would hasten anarchy, and he thought sizm.”  Why, Josiah Allen
handled that paper as if it wuz pure gold. I know he asked me anxiously
as he handed it to me to read, “if my hands wuz perfectly clean,” and we
had some words about it.

And till he could pass it on to Deacon Sypher to read he kep it in the
Bible. He put it right over in Galatians, for I looked to see--Second
Galatians.

And he wrapped it up in a soft handkerchief when he carried it over to
Deacon Sypherses. And Deacon Sypher treasured it like a pearl of great
price (so I spoze) till he could pass it on to Deacon Henzy.

And Deacon Henzy was to carry it with care to a old male Deacon in Zoar,
bed rid.

Wall, as I say, that is the very first I had read about their bein’ any
idee promulgated of wimmens settin’ up on the Conference.

And I, in spite of Josiah Allen’s excitement, wuz in favor on’t from the
very first.

Yes, I wuz awfully in favor of it, and all I went through durin’ the
next and ensuin’ weeks didn’t put the idee out of my head. No, far from
it. It seemed as if the severer my sufferin’s wuz, the much more this
idee flourished in my soul. Just as a heavy plow will meller up the soil
so white lilies can take root, or any other kind of sweet posies.

And oh! my heart! wuz not my sufferin’s with Lodema Trumble, a hard plow
and a harrowin’ one, and one that turned up deep furrows?

But of this, more anon and bimeby.



CHAPTER II.


Wall, it wuz on the very next day--on a Thursday as I remember well, for
I wuz a-thinkin’ why didn’t Lodema’s letter come the next day--Fridays
bein’ considered onlucky--and it being a day for punishments, hangin’s,
and so forth.

But it didn’t, it came on a Thursday. And my companion had been to
Jonesville and brung me back two letters; he brung ‘em in, leavin’ the
old mair standin’ at the gate, and handed me the letters, ten pounds of
granulated sugar, a pound of tea, and the request I should have supper
on the table by the time that he got back from Deacon Henzy’s.

(On that old buzz-saw business agin, so I spozed, but wouldn’t ask.)

Wall, I told him supper wuz begun any way, and he had better hurry back.
But he wuz belated by reason of Deacon Henzy’s bein’ away, so I set
there for some time alone.

Wall, I wuz goin’ to have some scolloped oysters for supper, so the
first thing I did wuz to put ‘em into the oven--they wuz all ready, I
had scolloped ‘em before Josiah come, and got ‘em all ready for the
oven--and then I set down and read my letters.

Wall, the first one I opened wuz from Lodema Trumble, Josiah’s cousin on
his own side. And her letter brought the sad and harrowin’ intelligence
that she was a-comin’ to make us a good long visit. The letter had been
delayed. She was a-comin’ that very night, or the next day. Wall, I
sithed deep. I love company dearly, but--oh my soul, is there not a
difference, a difference in visitors?

Wall, suffice it to say, I sithed deep, and opened the other letter,
thinkin’ it would kind o’ take my mind off.

And for all the world! I couldn’t hardly believe my eyes. But it wuz! It
wuz from Serena Fogg. It wuz from the Authoress of “Wedlock’s Peaceful
Repose.”

I hadn’t heard a word from her for upwards of four years. And the letter
brung me startlin’ intelligence.

It opened with the unexpected information that she wuz married. She had
been married three years and a half to a butcher out to the Ohio.

And I declare my first thought wuz as I read it, “Wall, she has wrote
dretful flowery on wedlock, and its perfect, onbroken calm, and peaceful
repose, and now she has had a realizin’ sense of what it really is.”

But when I read a little further, I see what the letter wuz writ for. I
see why, at this late day, she had started up and writ me a letter. I
see it wuz writ on duty.

She said she had found out that I wuz in the right on’t and she wuzn’t.
She said that when in the past she had disputed me right up and down,
and insisted that wedlock wuz a state of perfect serenity, never broken
in upon by any cares or vexations whatsomever, she wuz in the wrong
on’t.

She said she had insisted that when anybody had moored their barks into
that haven of wedded life, that they wuz forever safe from any rude
buffetin’s from the world’s waves; that they wuz exempt from any toil,
any danger, any sorrow, any trials whatsomever. And she had found she
was mistook.

She said I told her it wuz a first-rate state, and a satisfactory one
for wimmen; but still it had its trials, and she had found it so. She
said that I insisted its serenity wuz sometimes broken in upon, and she
had found it so. The last day at my house had tottled her faith, and her
own married experience had finished the work. Her husband wuz a worthy
man, and she almost worshipped him. But he had a temper, and he raved
round considerable when meals wuzn’t ready on time, and she havin’ had
two pairs of twins durin’ her union (she comes from a family on her
mother’s side, so I had hearn before, where twins wuz contagious), she
couldn’t always be on the exact minute. She had to work awful hard; this
broke in on her serenity.

Her husband devotedly loved her, so she said; but still, she said, his
bootjack had been throwed voyalent where corns wuz hit onexpected.

[Illustration: “FOUR TWINS BROKE IN ALSO ON HER WAVELESS CALM.”]

Their souls wuz mated firm as they could be in deathless ties of
affection and confidence, yet doors _had_ been slammed and oaths
emitted, when clothin’ rent and buttons tarried not with him. Strange
actions and demeanors had been displayed in hours of high-headedness and
impatience, which had skaired her almost to death before gettin’
accustomed to ‘em.

The four twins broke in also on her waveless calm. They wuz lovely
cherubs, and the four apples of her eyes. But they did yell at times,
they kicked, they tore round and acted; they made work--lots of work.
And one out of each pair snored. It broke up each span, as you may say.
The snorin’ filled each room devoted to ‘em.

_He_ snored, loud. A good man and a noble man he wuz, so she repeated
it, but she found out too late--too late, that he snored. The house wuz
small; she could _not_ escape from snores, turn she where she would. She
got tired out with her work days, and couldn’t rest nights. Her husband,
as he wuz doin’ such a flourishin’ business, had opened a cattle-yard
near the house. She wuz proud of his growin’ trade, but the bellerin’
of the cattle disturbed her fearfully. Also the calves bleating and the
lambs callin’ on their dams.

It wuz a long letter, filled with words like these, and it ended up by
saying that for years now she had wanted to write and tell me that I had
been in the right on’t and she in the wrong. I had been megum and she
hadn’t. And she ended by sayin’, “God bless me and adoo.”

[Illustration: THE LECTURE.]

The fire crackled softly on the clean hearth. The teakettle sung a song
of welcome and cheer. The oysters sent out an agreeable atmosphere. The
snowy table, set out in pretty china and glassware, looked invitin’, and
I set there comfortable and happy and so peaceful in my frame, that the
events of the past, in which Serena Fogg had flourished, seemed but as
yesterday.

I thought it all over, that pleasant evenin’ in the past, when Josiah
Allen had come in unexpected, and brung the intelligence to me that
there wuz goin’ to be a lectur’ give that evenin’ by a young female at
the Jonesville school-house, and beset me to go.

And I give my consent. Then my mind travelled down that pleasant road,
moongilded, to the school-house. It stopped on the door-step while
Josiah hitched the mair.

We found the school-house crowded full, fur a female lecturer wuz a
rarity, and she wuz a pretty girl, as pretty a girl as I ever see in my
life.

And it wuz a pretty lecture, too, dretful pretty. The name of the
lecture wuz, “Wedlock’s Peaceful and Perfect Repose.”

A pretty name, I think, and it wuz a beautiful lecture, very, and
extremely flowery. It affected some of the hearers awfully; they wuz
all carried away with it. Josiah Allen wept like a child durin’ the
rehearsin’ of it. I myself didn’t weep, but I enjoyed it, some of it,
first rate.

I can’t begin to tell it all as she did, ‘specially after this length of
time, in such a lovely, flowery way, but I can probably give a few of
the heads of it.

It hain’t no ways likely that I can give the heads half the stylish,
eloquent look that she did as she held ‘em up, but I can jest give the
bare heads.

She said that there had been a effort made in some directions to try to
speak against the holy state of matrimony. The papers had been full of
the subject, “Is Marriage a Failure, or is it not?”

She had even read these dreadful words--“Marriage is a Failure.” She
hated these words, she despised ‘em. And while some wicked people spoke
against this holy institution, she felt it to be her duty, as well as
privilege, to speak in its praise.

I liked it first rate, I can tell you, when she went on like that. For
no living soul can uphold marriage with a better grace that can she
whose name vuz once Smith.

I _love_ Josiah Allen, I am _glad_ that I married him. But at the same
time, my almost devoted love doesn’t make me blind. I can see on every
side of a subject, and although, as I said heretofore, and prior, I love
Josiah Allen, I also love megumness, and I could not fully agree with
every word she said.

But she went on perfectly beautiful--I didn’t wonder it brought the
school-house down--about the holy calm and perfect rest of marriage, and
how that calm wuz never invaded by any rude cares.

How man watched over the woman he loved; how he shielded her from every
rude care; kept labor and sorrow far, far from her; how woman’s life wuz
like a oneasy, roarin’, rushin’ river, that swept along discontented and
onsatisfied, moanin’ and lonesome, until it swept into the calm sea of
Repose--melted into union with the grand ocian of Rest, marriage.

And then, oh! how calm and holy and sheltered wuz that state! How
peaceful, how onruffled by any rude changes! Happiness, Peace, Calm! Oh,
how sweet, how deep wuz the ocian of True Love in which happy, united
souls bathed in blissful repose!

[Illustration: “HE HAD ON A NEW VEST.”]

It was dretful pretty talk, and middlin’ affectin’.  There wasn’t a dry
eye in Josiah Allen’s head, and I didn’t make no objection to his givin’
vent to his feelin’s, only when I see him bust out a-weepin’ I jest
slipped my pocket-handkerchief ‘round his neck and pinned it behind.
(His handkerchief wuz in constant use, a cryin’ and weepin’ as he wuz.)
And I knew that salt water spots black satin awfully. He had on a new
vest.

Submit Tewksbury cried and wept, and wept and cried, caused by
remembrances, it wuz spozed. Of which, more anon, and bimeby.

And Drusilly Sypher, Deacon Sypherses wife, almost had a spazzum, caused
by admiration and bein’ so highly tickled.

I myself didn’t shed any tears, as I have said heretofore. And what kep’
me calmer wuz, I _knew_, I knew from the bottom of my heart, that she
went too fur, she wuzn’t megum enough.

And then she went on to draw up metafors, and haul in illustrations,
comparin’ married life and single--jest as likely metafors as I ever
see, and as good illustrations as wuz ever brung up, only they every one
of ‘em had this fault--when she got to drawin’ ‘em, she drawed ‘em too
fur. And though she brought the school-house down, she didn’t convince
me.

[Illustration: “I MYSELF DIDN’T SHED ANY TEARS.”]

Once she compared single life to a lonely goose travellin’ alone acrost
the country, ‘cross lots, lonesome and despairin’, travellin’ along
over a thorny way, and desolate, weighed down by melancholy and gloomy
forebodin’s, and takin’ a occasional rest by standin’ up on one cold
foot and puttin’ its weery head under its wing, with one round eye
lookin’ out for dangers that menaced it, and lookin’, also, perhaps, for
a possible mate, for the comin’ gander--restless, wobblin’, oneasy,
miserable.

Why, she brought the school-house down, and got the audience all wrought
up with pity, and sympathy. Oh, how Submit Tewksbury did weep; she wept
aloud (she had been disappointed, but of this more bimeby).

And then she went on and compared that lonesome voyager to two blissful
wedded ones. A pair of white swans floatin’ down the waveless calm,
bathed in silvery light, floatin’ down a shinin’ stream that wuz never
broken by rough waves, bathed in a sunshine that wuz never darkened by a
cloud.

And then she went on to bring up lots of other things to compare the two
states to--flowery things and sweet, and eloquent.

She compared single life to quantities of things, strange, weird,
melancholy things, and curius. Why, they wuz so powerful that every one
of ‘em brought the school-house down.

And then she compared married life to two apple blossoms hangin’
together on one leafy bough on the perfumed June air, floatin’ back and
forth under the peaceful benediction of summer skies.

And she compared it to two white lambs gambolin’ on the velvety
hill-side. To two strains of music meltin’ into one dulcet harmony,
perfect, divine harmony, with no discordant notes.

Josiah hunched me, he wanted me to cry there, at that place, but I
wouldn’t. He did, he cried like an infant babe, and I looked close and
searchin’ to see if my handkerchief covered up all his vest.

He didn’t seem to take no notice of his clothes at all, he wuz a-weepin’
so--why, the whole schoolhouse wept, wept like a babe.

But I didn’t. I see it wuz a eloquent and powerful effort. I see it was
beautiful as anything could be, but it lacked that one thing I have
mentioned prior and before this time. It lacked megumness.

I knew they wuz all impressive and beautful illustrations, I couldn’t
deny it, and I didn’t want to deny it. But I knew in my heart that the
lonely goose that she had talked so eloquent about, I knew that though
its path might be tegus the most of the time, yet occasionally it
stepped upon velvet grass and blossomin’ daisies. And though the happy
wedded swans floated considerable easy a good deal of the time, yet
occasionally they had their wings rumpled by storms, thunder storms,
sudden squalls, and et cetery, et cetery.

And I knew the divine harmony of wedded love, though it is the sweetest
that earth affords, I knew that, and my Josiah knew it--the very
sweetest and happiest strains that earthly lips can sing.

Yet I knew that it wuz both heavenly sweet, and divinely sad, blended
discord and harmony. I knew there wuz minor chords in it, as well as
major, I knew that we must await love’s full harmony in heaven. There
shall we sing it with the pure melody of the immortals, my Josiah and
me. But I am a eppisodin’, and to continue and resoom.

Wall, we wuz invited to meet the young female after the lecture wuz
over, to be introduced to her and talk it over.

She wuz the Methodist minister’s wive’s cousin, and the minister’s wife
told me she wuz dretful anxious to get my opinion on the lecture. I
spoze she wanted to get the opinion of one of the first wimmen of the
day. For though I am fur from bein’ the one that ort to mention it, I
have heard of such things bein’ said about me all round Jonesville, and
as far as Loontown and Shackville. And so, I spoze, she wanted to get
hold of my opinion.

Wall, I wuz introduced to her, and I shook hands with her, and kissed
her on both cheeks, for she is a sweet girl and I liked her looks.

I could see that she was very, VERY sentimental, but she had a sweet,
confidin’, innocent look to her, and I give her a good kissin’ and I
meant it. When I like a person, I _do_ like ‘em, and visy-versey.

But at the same time my likin’ for a person mustn’t be strong enough to
overthrow my principles. And when she asked me in her sweet axents, “How
I liked her lecture, and if I could see any faults in it?” I leaned up
against Duty, and told her, “I liked it first-rate, but I couldn’t agree
with every word of it.”

Here Josiah Allen give me a look sharp enough to take my head clear off,
if looks could behead anybody. But they can’t.

And I kept right on, calm and serene, and sez I, “It wuz very full of
beautiful idees, as full of ‘em as a rose-bush is full of sweetness in
June, but,” says I, “if I speak at all I must tell the truth, and I must
say that while your lecture is as sweet and beautiful a effort as I ever
see tackled, full of beautiful thoughts, and eloquence, still I must say
that in my opinion it lacked one thing, it wuzn’t mean enough.”

“Mean enough?” sez she. “What do you mean?”

“Why,” sez I, “I mean, mean temperature, you know, middleinness,
megumness, and whatever you may call it; you go too fur.”

She said with a modest look “that she guessed she didn’t, she guessed
she didn’t go too far.”

And Josiah Allen spoke up, cross as a bear, and, sez he, “I know she
didn’t. She didn’t say a word that wuzn’t gospel truth.”

Sez I, “Married life is the happiest life in my opinion; that is, when
it is happy. Some hain’t happy, but at the same time the happiest of ‘em
hain’t _all_ happiness.”

“It is,” sez Josiah (cross and surly), “it is, too.”

[Illustration: “YOU GO TOO FUR.”]

And Serena Fogg said, gently, that she thought I  wuz mistaken, “she
thought it wuz.” And Josiah jined right in with her and said:

“He _knew_ it wuz, and he would take his oath to it.”

But I went right on, and, sez I, “Mebby it is in one sense the most
peaceful; that is, when the affections are firm set and stabled it makes
‘em more peaceful than when they are a-traipsin’ round and a-wanderin’.
But,” sez I, “marriage hain’t _all_ peace.”

Sez Josiah: “It is, and I’ll swear to it.”

Sez I, goin’ right on, cool and serene, “The sunshine of true love gilds
the pathway with the brightest radiance we know anything about, but it
hain’t all radiance.”

“Yes, it is,” sez Josiah, firmly, “it is, every mite of it.”

And Serena Fogg sez, tenderly and amiably, “Yes, I think Mr. Allen is
right; I think it is.”

“Wall,” sez I, in meanin’ axcents, awful meanin’, “when you are married
you will change your opinion, you mark my word.”

And she said, gently, but persistently, “That she guessed she shouldn’t;
she guessed she was in the right of it.”

Sez I, “You think when anybody is married they have got beyend all
earthly trials, and nothin’ but perfect peace and rest remains?”

And she sez, gently, “Yes, mem!”

“Why,” sez I, “I am married, and have been for upwards of twenty years,
and I think I ought to know somethin’ about it; and how can it be called
a state of perfect rest, when some days I have to pass through as many
changes as a comet, and each change a tegus one. I have to wabble round
and be a little of everything, and change sudden, too.

“I have to be a cook, a step-mother, a housemaid, a church woman, a wet
nurse (lots of times I have to wade out in the damp grass to take care
of wet chickens and goslins). I have to be a tailoress, a dairy-maid,
a literary soarer, a visitor, a fruit-canner, a adviser, a soother, a
dressmaker, a hostess, a milliner, a gardener, a painter, a surgeon, a
doctor, a carpenter, a woman, and more’n forty other things.

“Marriage is a first-rate state, and agreeable a good deal of the time;
but it haint a state of perfect peace and rest, and you’ll find out it
haint if you are ever married.”

But Miss Fogg said, mildly, “that she thought I wuz mistaken--she
thought it wuz.”

“You do?” sez I.

“Yes, mem,” sez she.

I got up, and sez I, “Come, Josiah, I guess we had better be a-goin’.”
 I thought it wouldn’t do no good to argue any more with her, and Josiah
started off after the mair. He had hitched it on the barn floor.

She didn’t seem willin’ to have me go; she seemed to cling to me. She
seemed to be a good, affectionate little creetur. And she said she would
give anything almost if she could rehearse the hull lecture over to me,
and have me criticise it. Sez she:

“I have heard so much about you, and what a happy home you have.”

“Yes,” sez I, “it is as happy as the average of happy homes, any way.”

And sez she, “I have heard that you and your husband wuz just devoted to
each other.” And I told her “that our love for each other wuz like two
rocks that couldn’t be moved.”

And she said, “On these very accounts she fairly hankered after my
advice and criticism. She said she hadn’t never lived in any house where
there wuz a livin’ man, her father havin’ died several months before she
was born; and she hadn’t had the experience that I had, and she presumed
that I could give her several little idees that she hadn’t thought on.”

And I told her calmly “that I presumed I could.”

It seemed that her father died two months after marriage, right in the
midst of the mellow light of the honeymoon, before he had had time to
drop the exstatic sweetness of courtship and newly-married bliss and
come down into the ordinary, everyday, good and bad demeanors of men.

And she had always lived with her mother (who naturally worshipped
and mentally knelt before the memory of her lost husband) and three
sentimental maiden aunts. And they had drawed all their knowledge of
manhood from Moore’s poems and Solomon’s Songs. So Serena Fogg’s idees
of men and married life wuz about as thin and as well suited to stand
the wear and tear of actual experience as a gauze dress would be to face
a Greenland winter in.

And so, after considerable urgin’ on her part (for I kinder hung back
and hated to tackle the job, but not knowin’ but that it wuz duty’s
call), I finally consented, and it wuz arranged this way:

She wuz to come down to our house some day, early in the mornin’, and
stay all day, and she wuz to stand up in front of me and rehearse the
lecture over to me, and I wuz to set and hear it, and when she came to a
place where I didn’t agree with her I wuz to lift up my right hand and
she wuz to stop rehearsin’, and we wuz to argue with each other back and
forth and try to convince each other.

And when we got it all arranged Josiah and I set out for home, I calm in
my frame, though dreadin’ the job some.



CHAPTER III.


But Josiah Allen wuz jest crazy over that lecture--crazy as a loon. He
raved about it all the way home, and he would repeat over lots of it
to me. About “how a man’s love was the firm anchor that held a woman’s
happiness stiddy; how his calm and peaceful influence held her mind in
a serene calm--a waveless repose; how tender men wuz of the fair sect,
how they watched over ‘em and held ‘em in their hearts.”

“Oh,” sez he, “it went beyond anything I ever heard of. I always knew
that men wuz good and pious, but I never realized how dumb pious they
wuz till to-night.”

“She said,” sez I, in considerable dry axents--not so dry as I keep by
me, but pretty dry--“No true man would let a woman perform any manuel
labor.”

“Wall, he won’t. There ain’t no need of your liftin’ your little finger
in emanuel labor.”

“Manuel, Josiah.”

“Wall, I said so, didn’t I? Hain’t I always holdin’ you back from work?”

“Yes,” sez I. “You often speak of it, Josiah. You are as good,” sez I,
firmly, “full as good as the common run of men, and I think a little
better. But there are things that have to be done. A married woman that
has a house and family to see to and don’t keep a hired girl, can’t get
along without some work and care.”

“Wall I say,” sez he, “that there hain’t no need of you havin’ a care,
not a single care. Not as long as I live--if it wuzn’t for me, you might
have some cares, and most probable would, but not while I live.”

I didn’t say nothin’ back, for I don’t want to hurt his feelin’s, and
won’t, not if I can help it. And he broke out again anon, or nearly
anon--

[Illustration: “OH, WHAT A LECTURE THAT WUZ.”]

“Oh, what a lecture that wuz. Did you notice when she wuz goin’ on
perfectly beautiful, about the waveless sea of married life--did you
notice how it took the school house down? And I wuz perfectly mortified
to see you didn’t weep or even clap your hands.”

“Wall,” sez I, firmly, “when I weep or when I clap, I weep and clap
on the side of truth. And I can’t see things as she duz. I have been
a-sailin’ on that sea she depictured for over twenty years, and have
never wanted to leave it for any other waters. But, as I told her, and
tell you now, it hain’t always a smooth sea, it has its ups and downs,
jest like any other human states.”

Sez I, soarin’ up a very little ways, not fur, for it wuz too cold, and
I was too tired, “There hain’t but one sea, Josiah Allen, that is calm
forever, and one day we will float upon it, you and me. It is the sea
by which angels walk and look down into its crystal depths, and behold
their blessed faces. It is the sea on whose banks the fadeless lilies
blow--and that mirrors the soft, cloudless sky of the Happy Morning. It
is the sea of Eternal Repose, that rude blasts can never blow up into
billows. But our sea--the sea of married life--is not like that, it is
ofttimes billowy and rough.”

“I say it hain’t,” sez he, for he was jest carried away with the
lecture, and enthused. “We have had a happy time together, Josiah Allen,
for over twenty years, but has our sea of life always been perfectly
smooth?”

“Yes, it has; smooth as glass.”

“Hain’t there never been a cloud in our sky?”

“No, there hain’t; not a dumb cloud.”

Sez I, sternly, “There has in mine. Your wicked and profane swearin’ has
cast many and many a cloud over my sky, and I’d try to curb in my tongue
if I was in your place.”

“‘Dumb’ hain’t swearin’,” sez he. And then he didn’t say nothin’ more
till anon, or nearly at that time, he broke out agin, and sez he:

“Never, never did I hear or see such eloquence till to-night I’ll have
that girl down to our house to stay a week, if I’m a living Josiah
Allen.”

“All right,” sez I, cheerfully. “I’d love to have her stay a week or
ten days, and I’ll invite her, too, when she comes down to rehearse her
lecture.”

Wall we got home middlin’ tired, and the subject kinder dropped down,
and Josiah had lots of work come on the next day, and so did I, and
company. And it run along for over a week before she come. And when she
did come, it wuz in a dreadful bad time. It seems as if she couldn’t
have come in a much worse time.

It wuz early one mornin’, not more than nine o’clock, if it wuz that.
There had come on a cold snap of weather unexpected, and Josiah wuz
a-bringin’ in the cook stove from the summer kitchen, when she come.

Josiah Allen is a good man. He is my choice out of a world full of men,
but I can’t conceal it from myself that his words at such a time are
always voyalent, and his demeanor is not the demeanor that I would wish
to have showed off to the public.

He wuz at the worst place, too. He had got the stove wedged into the
entry-way door, and couldn’t get it either way. He had acted awkward
with it, and I told him so, and he see it when it wuz too late.

He had got it fixed in such a way that he couldn’t get into the kitchen
himself without gettin’ over the stove, and I, in the course of duty,
thought it wuz right to tell him that if he had heerd to me he wouldn’t
have been in such a fix. Oh! the voyalence and frenzy of his demeanor as
he stood there a-hollerin’. I wuz out in the wood-house shed a-bilin’ my
cider apple sass in the big cauldron kettle, but I heard the racket,
and as I come a-runnin’ in I thought I heard a little rappin’ at the
settin’-room door, but I didn’t notice it much, I wuz that agitated to
see the way the stove and Josiah wuz set and wedged in.

There the stove wuz, wedged firm into the doorway, perfectly sot there.
There wuz sut all over the floor, and there stood Josiah Allen, on the
wood-house side, with his coat off, his shirt all covered with black,
and streaks of black all over his face. And oh! how wild and almost
frenzied his attitude wuz as he stood there as if he couldn’t move nor
be moved no more than the stove could. And oh! the voyalence of the
language he hurled at me acrost that stove.

“Why,” sez I, “you must come in here, Josiah Allen, and pull it from
this side.”

And then he hollered at me, and asked me:

“How in thunder he was a goin’ to _get_ in.” And then he wanted to know
“if I wanted him squshed into jelly by comin’ in by the side of it--or
if I thought he wuz a crane, that he could step over it or a stream
of water that he could run under it, or what else do you think?” He
hollered wildly.

“Wall,” sez I, “you hadn’t ort to got it fixed in that shape. I told
you what end to move first,” sez I. “You have moved it in side-ways. It
would go in all right if you had started it the other way.”

“Oh, yes! It would have been all right. You love to see me, Samantha,
with a stove in my arms. You love it dearly. I believe you would be
perfectly happy if you could see me a luggin’ round stoves every day.
But I’ll tell you one thing, if this dumb stove is ever moved either way
out of this door--if I ever get it into a room agin, it never shall
be stirred agin so much as a hair’s breadth--not while I have got the
breath of life in me.”

Sez I, “Hush! I hear somebody a-knockin’ at the door.”

“I won’t hush. It is nothin’ but dumb foolishness a movin’ round stoves,
and if anybody don’t believe it let ‘em look at me--and let ‘em look at
that stove set right here in the door as firm as a rock.”

[Illustration: “WON’T YOU BE STILL?”]

Sez I agin in a whisper, “Do be still, and I’ll let ‘em in, I don’t want
them to ketch you a talkin’ so and a-actin’.”  “Wall, I want ‘em to
ketch me, that is jest what I want ‘em to do. If it is a man he’ll say
every word I say is Gospel truth, and if it is a woman it will make her
perfectly happy to see me a-swelterin’ in the job--seven times a year do
I have to move this stove back and forth--and I say it is high time I
said a word. So you can let ‘em in just as quick as you are a mind to.”

Sez I, a whisperin’ and puttin’ my finger on my lip:

“Won’t you be still?”

“No, I won’t be still!” he yelled out louder than ever. “And you may go
through all the motions you want to and you can’t stop me. All you have
got to do is to walk round and let folks in, happy as a king. Nothin’
under the heavens ever made a woman so happy as to have some man
a-breakin’ his back a-luggin’ round a stove.”

I see he wouldn’t stop, so I had to go and open the door, and there
stood Serena Fogg, there stood the author of “Wedlock’s Peaceful
Repose.” I felt like a fool. For I knew she had heard every word, I see
she had by her looks. She looked skairt, and as surprised and sort o’
awe-stricken as if she had seen a ghost. I took her into the parlor, and
took her things, and I excused myself by tellin’ her that I should have
to be out in the kitchen a-tendin’ to things for a spell, and went back
to Josiah.

And I whispered to him, sez I: “Miss Fogg has come, and she has heard
every word you have said, Josiah Allen. And what will she think now
about Wedlock’s Peaceful Repose?”

But he had got that wild and reckless in his demeanor and acts, that
he went right on with his hollerin’, and, sez he, “She won’t find much
repose here to-day, and I’ll tell her that. This house has got to be all
tore to pieces to get that stove started.”

Sez I, “There won’t be nothin’ to do only to take off one side of the
door casin’. And I believe it can be done without that.”

“Oh, you believe! you believe! You’d better take holt and lug and lift
for two hours as I have, and then see.”

Sez I, “You hain’t been here more’n ten minutes, if you have that. And
there,” sez I, liftin’ up one end a little, “see what anybody can do who
is calm. There I have stirred it, and now you can move it right along.”
 “Oh, _you_ did it! I moved it myself.”

I didn’t contend, knowin’ it wuz men’s natural nater to say that.

[Illustration: “AND HE SAID I HAD RUBBED ‘EM OUT.”]

Wall, at last Josiah got the stove in, but then the stove-pipe wouldn’t
go together, it wouldn’t seem to fit. He had marked the joints with
chalk, and the marks had rubbed off, and he said I had “rubbed ‘em out.”
 I wuz just as innocent as a babe, but I didn’t dispute him much, for I
see a little crack open in the parlor door, and I knew the author of
“Wedlock’s Peaceful Repose” was a-listenin’.

But when he told me for the third time that I rubbed ‘em out on purpose
to make him trouble, and that I had made a practice of rubbin’ ‘em out
for years and years--why, then I _had_ to correct him on the subject,
and we had a little dialogue.

I spoze Serena Fogg heard it. But human nater can’t bear only just so
much, especially when it has stoves a dirtien up the floor, and apple
sass on its mind, and unexpected company, and no cookin’ and a threshin’
machine a-comin’.



CHAPTER IV.


Never knew a word about the threshin’ machine a-comin’ till about half
an hour before. Josiah Allen wuzn’t to blame. It come just as onexpected
onto him as it did onto me.

Solomon Gowdey wuz a-goin’ to have ‘em first, which would have left me
ample time to cook up for ‘em. But he wuz took down bed sick, so they
had to come right onto us with no warnin’ previous and beforehand.

They wuz a drivin’ up just as Josiah got the stove-pipe up. They had to
go right by the side of the house, right by the parlor winders, to get
to the side of the barn where they wanted to thresh; and just as they
wuz a-goin’ by one of the horses got down, and of all the yellin’ I ever
heard that was the cap sheaf.

Steve Yerden is rough on his horses, dretful rough. He yells at ‘em
enough to raise the ruff. His threshin’ machine is one of the kind where
the horses walk up and look over the top. It is kinder skairful any way,
and it made it as bad agin when you expected to see the horse fall out
every minute.

Wall, that very horse fell out of the machine three times that day. It
wuz a sick horse, I believe, and hadn’t ort to have been worked. But
three times it fell, and each time the yellin’ wuz such that it skairt
the author of “Peaceful Repose,” and me, almost to death.

The machine wuz in plain sight of the house, and every time we see the
horse’s head come a mountin’ up on top of the machine, we expected that
over it would go. But though it didn’t fall out only three times, as I
said, it kep’ us all nerved up and uneasy the hull of the time expectin’
it. And Steve Yerden kep’ a-yellin’ at his horses all the time; there
wuzn’t no comfort to be took within a mile of him.

I wuz awful sorry it happened so, on her account.

[Illustration: “IT DIDN’T FALL OUT ONLY THREE TIMES.”]

Wall, I had to get dinner for nine men, and cook if all from the very
beginnin’. If you’ll believe it,  I had to begin back to bread. I hadn’t
any bread in the house, but I had it a-risin’, and I got two loaves out
by dinner time. But I had to stir round lively, I can tell you, to make
pies and cookies and fried cakes, and cook meat, and vegetables of all
kinds.

The author of “Wedlock’s Peaceful Repose” came out into the kitchen. I
told her she might, if she wanted to, for I see I wuzn’t goin’ to have a
minute’s time to go into the parlor and visit with her.

She looked pretty sober and thoughtful, and I didn’t know as she liked
it, to think I couldn’t do as I promised to do, accordin’ to agreement,
to hear her lecture, and lift my hand up when I differed from her.

But, good land! I couldn’t help it. I couldn’t get a minute’s time to
lift my hand up. I could have heard the lecture, but I couldn’t spare my
hands.

And then Josiah would come a-rushin’ in after one thing and another,
actin’ as was natural, accordin’ to the nater of man, more like a wild
man than a Christian Methodist. For he was so wrought up and excited by
havin’ so much on his hands to do, and the onexpectedness of it, that he
couldn’t help actin’ jest as he did act. I don’t believe he could. And
then Steve Yerden is enough to distract a leather-man, any way.

[Illustration: “TO FIND A PIECE OF OLD ROPE TO TIE UP THE HARNESS.”]

Twice I had to drop everything and find cloths to do up the horse’s
legs, where it had grazed ‘em a-fallin’ out of the machine. And once I
took my hands out of the pie-crust to find a piece of old rope to tie up
the harness. It seemed as if I left off every five minutes to wait on
Josiah Allen, to find somethin’ that he wanted and couldn’t find, or
else to do somethin’ for him that he couldn’t do.

Truly, it was a wild and harrowin’ time, and tegus. But I kept a firm
holt of my principles, and didn’t groan--not when anybody could hear me.
I won’t deny that I did, out in the buttery by myself, give vent to a
groan or two, and a few sithes. But immegiately, or a very little after,
I was calm again.

Wall, worse things wuz a-comin’ onto me, though I didn’t know it. I owed
a tin peddler; had been owin’ him for four weeks. I owed him twenty-five
pounds of paper rags, for a new strainer. I had been expectin’ him for
over three weeks every day. But in all the three hundred and sixty-five
days of the year, there wuzn’t another day that would satisfy him; he
had got to come on jest that day, jest as I wuz fryin’ my nut cakes for
dinner.

I tried to put him off till another day. But no! He said it wuz his last
trip, and he must have his rags. And so I had to put by my work, and lug
down my rag-bag. His steel-yards wuz broke, so he had to weigh ‘em in
the house. It wuz a tegus job, for he wuz one of the perticuler kind,
and had to look ‘em all over before he weighed ‘em, and pick out every
little piece of brown paper, or full cloth--everything, he said, that
wouldn’t make up into the nicest kind of writin’ paper.

And my steel-yards wuz out of gear any way, so they wouldn’t weigh but
five pounds at a time, and he wuz dretful perticuler to have ‘em just
right by the notch.

And he would call on me to come and see just how the steel-yards stood
every time. (He wuz as honest as the day; I hain’t a doubt of it.)

But it wuz tegus, fearful tegus, and excitin’. Excitin’, but not
exhileratin’, to have the floor all covered with rags of different
shapes and sizes, no two of a kind. It wuz a curius time before he come,
and a wild time, but what must have been the wildness, and the curosity
when there wuz, to put a small estimate on it, nearly a billion of crazy
lookin’ rags scattered round on the floor.

[Illustration: “SHE LOOKED CURIUS, CURIUSER THAN THE FLOOR LOOKED.”]

But I kep’ calm; I have got giant self-control, and I used every mite of
it, every atom of control I had by me, and kep’ calm. I see I must--for
I see that Miss Fogg looked bad; yes, I see that the  author of
“Wedlock’s Peaceful Repose” wuz pretty much used up. She looked curius,
curiuser than the floor looked, and that is goin’ to the complete end of
curosity, and metafor.

Wall, I tussled along and got dinner ready. The tin peddler had to stay
to dinner, of course. I couldn’t turn him out jest at dinner time. And
sometimes I almost think that he delayed matters and touzled ‘round
amongst them rags jest a purpose to belate himself, so he would have to
stay to dinner.

I am called a good cook. It is known ‘way out beyend Loontown and
Zoar--it is talked about, I spoze. Wall, he stayed to dinner. But he
only made fourteen; there wuz only thirteen besides him, so I got along.
And I had a good dinner and enough of it.

I had to wait on the table, of course--that is, the tea and coffee. And
I felt that a cup of good, strong tea would be a paneky. I wuz that wore
out and flustrated that I felt that I needed a paneky to soothe.

And I got the rest all waited on and wuz jest a liftin’ my cup to my
lips, the cup that cheers everybody but don’t inebriate ‘em--good,
strong Japan tea with cream in it. Oh, how good it smelt. But I hadn’t
fairly got it to my mouth when I wuz called off sudden, before I had
drinked a drop, for the case demanded help at once.

Miss Peedick had unexpected company come in, jest as they wuz a-settin’
down to the dinner-table, and she hadn’t hardly anything for dinner, and
the company wuz very genteel--a minister and a Justice of the Peace--so
she wanted to borrow a loaf of bread and a pie.

She is a good neighbor and is one that will put herself out for a
neighborin’ female, and I went into the buttery, almost on the run, to
get ‘em for her, for her girl said she wanted to get ‘em into the house
and onto the table before Mr. Peedick come in with ‘em from the horse
barn, for they knew that Mr. Peedick would lead ‘em out to dinner the
very second they got into the house, and Miss Peedick didn’t want her
husband to know that she had borrowed vittles, for he would be sure to
let the cat out of the bag, right at the table, by speakin’ about ‘em
and comparin’ ‘em with hern.

I see the necessity for urgent haste, and the trouble wuz that I hurried
too much. In takin’ down a pie in my awful hurry, I tipped over a pan of
milk right onto my dress. It wuz up high and I wuz right under the
shelf, so that about three tea-cupsful went down into my neck. But the
most went onto my dress, about five quarts, I should judge besides that
that wuz tricklin’ down my backbone.

[Illustration: “I SEE THE NECESSITY FOR URGENT HASTE.”]

Wall, I started Serintha Ann Peedick off with her ma’s pie and bread,
and then wiped up the floor as well as I could, and then I had to go and
change my clothes. I had to change ‘em clear through to my wrapper, for
I wuz wet as sop--as wet as if I had been takin’ a milk swim.



CHAPTER V.


Wall, the author of “Wedlock’s Peaceful Repose” wuz a-waitin’ for me to
the table; the men had all got through and gone out. She sot right by
me, and she had missed me, I could see. Her eyes looked bigger than
ever, and more sad like.

She said, “she was dretful sorry for me,” and I believed her.

She asked me in a awe-stricken tone, “if I had such trials every day?”

And I told her “No, I didn’t.” I told her that things would run along
smooth and agreeable for days and days, but that when things got to
happenin’, they would happen right along for weeks at a time, sometimes,
dretful curius. A hull batch of difficulties would rain down on anybody
to once. Sez I, “You know Mr. Shakespeare says that’ Sorrows never come
a-spyin’ along as single fighters, but they come in hull battles of
‘em,’ or words to that effect.”

Sez I, in reasonable axents, “Mebby I shall have a hull lot of good
things happen to me right along, one after another, some dretful
agreeable days, and easy.”

Sez she in the same sad axents, and wonderin’, “Did you ever have
another day in your hull life as hard as this you are a-passin’
through?”

“Oh, yes,” sez I, “lots of’em--some worse ones, and,” sez I, “the day
has only jest begun yet, I presume I shall have lots and lots of new
things happen to me before night. Because it is jest as I tell you, when
things get to happenin’ there hain’t no tellin’ when they will ever
stop.”

Miss Fogg groaned, a low, deep groan, and that is every word she said,
only after a little while she spoke up, and sez:

“You hain’t eaten a bit of dinner; it all got cold while you wuz a
changin’ your dress.”

“Oh, wall,” sez I, “I can get along some way. And I must hurry up and
get the table cleared off any way, and get to my work agin’, for I have
got to do a lot of cookin’ this afternoon. It takes a sight of pies and
cakes and such to satisfy twelve or a dozen men.”

So I went to work vigorously agin. But well might I tell Miss Fogg “that
the day had only jest begun, and there wuz time for lots of things
to happen before night,” for I had only jest got well to work on the
ingregiences of my pies when Submit Tewksbury sent over “to see if I
could let her have them sturchien seeds I had promised her--she wanted
‘em to run up the inside of her bedroom winder, and shade her through
the winter. She wuz jest a-settin’ out her winter stock of flower roots
and seeds, and wanted ‘em immegiatly, and to once, that is, if it was
perfectly convenient,” so the boy said.

Submit is a good creeter, and she wouldn’t have put that burden on me on
such a time for nothin’, not if she had known my tribulations; but she
didn’t, and I felt that one trial more wouldn’t, as the poet hath well
said, “either make or break me.”

So I went to huntin’ for the seeds. Wall, it wuz a good half-hour before
I could find ‘em, for of course it wuz natural nater, accordin’ to the
total deprivity of things, that I should find ‘em in the bottom of the
last bag of seeds that I overhauled.

But Submit had been disappointed, and I didn’t want to make her burdens
any heavier, so I sent her the sturchien seeds.

But it wuz a trial I do admit to look over more than forty bags of
garden and flower seeds in such a time as that. But I sent ‘em. I sent
Submit the sturchien seeds, and then I laid to work again fast as I
possibly could.

But I sez to the author of “Peaceful Repose,” I sez to her, sez I:

“I feel bad to think I hain’t gettin’ no time to hear you rehearse your
lecture, but you can see jest how it is; you see I hain’t had a minute’s
time today. Mebby I will get a few minutes’ time before night; I will
try to,” sez I.

“Oh,” sez she, “it hain’t no matter about that; I--I--I somehow--I don’t
feel like rehearsin’ it as it was.” Sez she, “I guess I shall make some
changes in it before I rehearse it agin.”

Sez I, “You lay out to make a more mean thing of it, more megum.”

“Yes,” sez she, in faint axents, “I am a-thinkin’ of it.”

[Illustration: “AS I STARTED FOR THE BUTTERY.”]

“Wall,” sez I cheerfully, as I started for the buttery with a pile of
cups in one hand, the castor and pickle dish in the other, and a pile of
napkins under my arm, “I believe I shall like it as well again if you
do, any way,” sez I, as I kicked away the cat that wuz a-clawin’ my
dress, and opened the door with my foot, both hands bein’ full.

“Any way, there will be as much agin truth in it.”

Wall, I went to work voyalently, and in two hours’ time I had got my
work quelled down some. But I had to strain nearly every nerve in the
effort.

And I am afraid I didn’t use the colporter just exactly right, who come
when I wuz right in the midst of puttin’ the ingregiences into my tea
cakes. I didn’t enter so deep into the argument about the Revised
New Testament as I should in easier and calmer times. I conversed
considerable, I argued some with him, but I didn’t get so engaged as
mebby I had ort to. He acted disappointed, and he didn’t stay and talk
more’n an hour and three quarters.

He generally spends half a day with us. He is a master hand to talk;
he’ll make your brain fairly spin round he talks so fast and handles
such large, curius words. He talked every minute, only when I wuz
a-answerin’ his questions.

[Illustration: “THERE WUZ SOMETHIN’ WRONG ABOUT ‘EM.”]

Wall, he had jest gone, the front gate had just clicked onto him, when
Miss Philander Dagget came in at the back door. She had her press-board
in  her hand, and a coat over her arm, and I see in a minute that I had
got another trial onto me. I see I had got to set her right.

I set her a chair, and she took off her sun-bonnet and hung it over the
back of her chair, and set down, and then she asked me if I could spend
time to put in the sleeves of her husband’s coat. She said “there wuz
somethin’ wrong about em’, but she didn’t know what.”

She said “she wouldn’t have bothered me that day when I had so much
round, but Philander had got to go to a funeral the next day, as one of
the barriers, and he must have his coat.”

Wall, I wrung my hands out of the dish-water they was in at the time,
and took the coat and looked at it, and the minute I set my eyes on it
I see what ailed it I see she had got the sleeves sot in so the elbows
come right in front of his arms, and if he had wore it in that condition
to the funeral or anywhere else he would have had to fold up his arms
right acrost his back; there wuzn’t no other possible way.

And then I turned tailoress and helped her out of her trouble. I sot
the sleeves in proper, and fixed the collar. She had got it sot on as a
ruffle. I drawed it down smooth where it ort to be and pinned it--and
she went home feelin’ first rate.

I am very neighborly, and helpful, and am called so. Jonesville would
miss me if any thing should happen.

[Illustration: “SHE IS APT TO GET THINGS WRONG.”]

I have often helped that woman a sight. She is a good, willin’ creeter,
but she is apt to get things wrong, dretful apt. She made her little
boy’s pantaloons once wrong side before, so it would seem that he would
have to set down from the front side, or else stand up.

And twice she got her husband’s pantaloons sewed up so there wuz no way
to get into em’ only to crawl up into ‘em through the bottom of the
legs. But I have always made a practice of rippin’ and tearin’ and
bastin’, and settin’ her right, and I did now.

Wall, she hadn’t hardly got out of the back door, when Josiah Allen came
in in awful distress, he had got a thorn in his foot, he had put on an
old pair of boots, and there wuz a hole in the side of one of ‘em, and
the thorn had got in through the hole. It pained him dretfully, and he
wuz jest as crazy as a loon for the time bein’. And he hollered the
first thing that “he wanted some of Hall’s salve.” And I told him “there
wuzn’t a mite in the house.”

And he hollered up and says, “There would be some if there wuz any sense
in the head of the house.”

[Illustration: “HE WANTED SOME OF HALL’S SALVE.”]

I glanced up mechanically at his bald head, but didn’t say nothin’, for
I see it wouldn’t do. And he hollered out agin, “Why hain’t there any
Hall’s salve?”  Sez I, “Because old Hall has been dead for years and
years, and hain’t made any salve.”

“Wall, he wouldn’t have been dead if he had had any care took of him,”
 he yelled out.

“Why,” sez I, “he wuz killed by lightnin’; struck down entirely
onexpected five years ago last summer.”

“Oh, argue and dispute with a dying man. Gracious Peter! what will
become of me!” he groaned out, a-holdin’ his foot in his hand.

Sez I, “Let me put some Pond’s Extract on it, Josiah.”

“Pond’s Extract!” he yelled, and then he called that good remedy words I
wuz ashamed to hear him utter.

And he jumped round and pranced and kicked just as it is the nater of
man to act under bodily injury of that sort. And then he ordered me to
take a pin and get the thorn out, and then acted mad as a hen at me
all the time I wuz a-doin’ it; acted jest as if I wuz a-prickin’ him
a-purpose.

He talked voyalent and mad. I tried to hush him down; I told him the
author of “Wedlock’s Peaceful Repose” would hear him, and he hollered
back “he didn’t care a cent who heard him. He wuz killed, and he
shouldn’t live to trouble anybody long if that pain kept up.”

His acts and words wuz exceedingly skairful to anybody who didn’t
understand the nater of a man. But I wuzn’t moved by ‘em so much as the
width of a horse hair. Good land! I knew that jest as soon as the pain
subsided he would be good as gold, so I kep’ on, cool and collected, and
got the thorn out, and did up the suffering toe in Pond’s Extract, and I
hadn’t only jest got it done, when, for all the world! if I didn’t see a
double team stop in front of the house, and I peeked through the winder
and see as it wuz the livery stable man from Jonesville, and he had
brung down the last straws to be lifted onto the camel’s back--a hull
lot of onexpected company. A hull load of ‘em.

There wuz the Baptist minister and his wife and their three children,
and the minister’s wife’s sister-in-law from the West, who wuz there
a-visitin’, and the editor of the _Augur’ses_ wife (she wuz related to
the visitor from the West by marriage) and three of the twins. And old
Miss Minkley, she wuz acquainted with the visitor’s mother, used to go
to school with her. And Drusilly Sypher, she wuz the visitor from the
West’s bosom friend, or used to be.

Wall, they had all come down to spend the afternoon and visit with each
other, and with me and Josiah, and stay to supper.



CHAPTER VI.


The author of “Peaceful Repose” sez to me, and she looked pale and
skairt; she had heard every word Josiah had said, and she wuz dretful
skairt and shocked (not knowin’ the ways of men, and not understandin’,
as I said prior and before, that in two hours’ time he would be jest as
good as the very best kind of pie, affectionate, and even spoony, if I
would allow spoons, which I will not the most of the time). Wall, she
proposed, Miss Fogg did, that she should ride back with the livery man.
And though I urged her to stay till night, I couldn’t urge her as hard
as I would otherwise, for by that time the head of the procession of
visitors had reached the door-step, and I had to meet ‘em with smiles.

[Illustration: “SHE PROPOSED THAT SHE SHOULD RIDE BACK WITH THE LIVERY
MAN.”]

I smiled some, I thought I must. But they wuz curius smiles, very,
strange-lookin’ smiles, sort o’ gloomy ones, and mournful lookin’. I
have got lots of different smiles that I keep by me for different
occasions, every woman has, and this wuz one of my most mournfulest and
curiusest ones.

Wall, the author of “Wedlock’s Peaceful and Perfect Repose” insisted on
goin’, and she went. And I sez to her as she went down the steps, “That
if she would come up some other day when I didn’t have quite so much
work round, I would be as good as my word to her about hearin’ her
rehearse the lecture.”

But she said, as she hurried out to the gate, lookin’ pale an’ wan (as
wan agin as she did when she came, if not wanner): “That she should make
_changes_ in it before she ever rehearsed it agin--_deep changes_!”

And I should dare to persume to say that she did. Though, as I say, she
went off most awful sudden, and I hadn’t seen nor heard from her sence
till I got this letter.

Wall, jest as I got through with the authoresses letter, and Lodema
Trumble’s, Josiah Allen came. And I hurried up the supper. I got it all
on the table while I wuz a steepin’ my tea (it wuz good tea). And we sot
down to the table happy as a king and his queen. I don’t s’pose queens
make a practice of steepin’ tea, but mebby they would be better off if
they did--and have better appetites and better tea. Any way we felt
well, and the supper tasted good. And though Josiah squirmed some when I
told him Lodema wuz approachin’ and would be there that very night or
the next day--still the cloud wore away and melted off in the glowin’
mellowness of the hot tea and cream, the delicious oysters and other
good things.

[Illustration: “MY PARDNER ENJOYS GOOD VITTLES.”]

My pardner, though, as he often says, is not a epicack, still he duz
enjoy good vittles dretful well and appreciates ‘em. And I make a stiddy
practice of doin’ the best I can by him in this direction.

And if more females would foller on and cipher out this simple rule, and
get the correct answer to it, the cramp in the right hands of divorce
lawyers would almost entirely disappear.

For truly it seems that _no_ human man _could be_ more worrysome, and
curius, and hard to get along with than Josiah Allen is at times; still,
by stiddy keepin’ of my table set out with good vittles from day to day,
and year to year, the golden cord of affection has bound him to me by
ties that can’t never be broken into.

He worships me! And the better vittles I get, the more he thinks on me.
For love, however true and deep it is, is still a tumultous sea; it has
its high tides, and its low ones, its whirlpools, and its calms.

He loves me a good deal better some days than he does others; I see it
in his mean. And mark you! mark it well, female reader, these days are
the ones that I cook up sights and sights of good food, and with a
cheerful countenance and clean apron, set it before him in a bright
room, on a snowy table-cloth!

Great--great is the mystery of men’s love.

I have often and often repeated this simple fact and truth that
underlies married life, and believe me, dear married sisters, too much
cannot be said about it, by those whose hearts beat for the good of
female and male humanity--and it _cannot_ be too closely followed up and
practised by female pardners.

But I am a-eppisodin’; and to resoom.

Wall, Lodema Trumble arrove the next mornin’ bright and early--I mean
the mornin’ wuz bright, not Lodema--oh no, fur from it; Lodema is never
bright and cheerful--she is the opposite and reverse always.

She is a old maiden. I do think it sounds so much more respectful to
call ‘em so rather than “old maid” (but I had to tutor Josiah dretful
sharp before I could get him into it).

I guess Lodema is one of the regular sort. There is different kinds of
old maidens, some that could marry if they would, and some that
would but couldn’t. And I ruther mistrust she is one of the
“would-but-couldn’t’s,” though I wouldn’t dast to let her know I said
so, not for the world.

Josiah never could bear the sight of her, and he sort o’ blamed her for
bein’ a old maiden. But I put a stop to that sudden, for sez I:

“She hain’t to blame, Josiah.”

And she wuzn’t. I hain’t a doubt of it.

Wall, how long she calculated to stay this time we didn’t know. But we
had our fears and forebodin’s about it; for she wuz in the habit of
makin’ awful long visits. Why, sometimes she would descend right down
onto us sudden and onexpected, and stay fourteen weeks right along--jest
like a famine or a pestilence, or any other simely that you are a mind
to bring up that is tuckerin’ and stiddy.

And she wuz disagreeable, I’ll confess, and she wuz tuckerin’, but I
done well by her, and stood between her and Josiah all I could. He loved
to put on her, and she loved to impose on him. I don’t stand up for
either on ‘em, but they wuz at regular swords’ pints all the time
a’most. And it come fearful tuff on me, fearful tuff, for I had to stand
the brunt on it.

But she is a disagreeable creeter, and no mistake. She is one of them
that can’t find one solitary thing or one solitary person in this wide
world to suit ‘em. If the weather is cold she is pinin’ for hot weather,
and if the weather is hot she is pantin’ for zero.

[Illustration: “BUT SHE IS A DISAGREEABLE CREETER.”]

If it is a pleasant day the sun hurts her eyes, and if it is cloudy she
groans aloud and says “she can’t see.”

And no human bein’ wuz ever known to suit her. She gets up early in the
mornin’ and puts on her specs, and goes out (as it were) a-huntin’ up
faults in folks. And she finds ‘em, finds lots of ‘em. And then she
spends the rest of the day a-drivin’ ‘em ahead of her, and groanin’ at
‘em.

You know this world bein’ such a big place and so many different sort o’
things in it that you can generally find in it the perticuler sort of
game you set out to hunt in the mornin’.

If you set out to hunt beauty and goodness, if you take good aim and are
perseverin’--if you jest track ‘em and foller ‘em stiddy from mornin’
till night, and don’t get led away a-follerin’ up some other game,
such as meanness and selfishness and other such worthless head o’
cattle--why, at night you will come in with a sight of good game. You
will be a noble and happy hunter.

[Illustration: “BUT FIT WITH THEIR TONGUES, FEARFUL.”]

At the same time, if you hunt all day for faults you will come in at
night with sights of pelts. You will find what you hunt for, track ‘em
right along and chase ‘em down.  Wall, Lodema never got led away from
her perticuler chase. She just hunted faults from mornin’ till night,
and done well at it. She brought in sights of skins.

But oh! wuzn’t it disagreeable in the extreme to Samantha, who had
always tried to bend her bow and bring down Beauty, to have her familiar
huntin’ grounds turned into so different a warpath. It wuz disagreeable!
It wuz! It wuz!

And then, havin’ to stand between her and Josiah too, wuz fearful
wearin’ on me. I had always stood there in the past, and now in this
visit it wuz jest the same; all the hull time, till about the middle of
the fifth week, I had to stand between their two tongues--they didn’t
fight with their hands, but fit with their tongues, fearful.



CHAPTER VII.


But along about the middle of the fifth week I see a change. Lodema
had been uncommon exasperatin’, and I expected she would set Josiah to
goin’, and I groaned in spirit, to think what a job wuz ahead of me, to
part their two tongues--when all of a sudden I see a curius change come
over my pardner’s face.

I remember jest the date that the change in his mean wuz visible, and
made known to me--for it wuz the very mornin’ that we got the invitation
to old Mr. and Miss Pressley’s silver weddin’. And that wuz the
fifteenth day of the month along about the middle of the forenoon.

And it wuz not half an hour after Elnathen Pressley came to the door and
give us the invitations, that I see the change in his mean.

And when I asked him about it afterwards, what that strange and curius
look meant, he never hung back a mite from tellin’ me, but sez right out
plain:

“Mebby, Samantha, I hain’t done exactly as I ort to by cousin Lodema,
and I have made up my mind to make her a happy surprise before she goes
away.”

“Wall,” sez I, “so do.”

I thought he wuz goin’ to get her a new dress. She had been a-hintin’
to him dretful strong to that effect. She wanted a parmetty, or a
balzereen, or a circassien, which wuz in voge in her young days. But I
wuz in hopes he would get her a cashmere, and told him so, plain.

But I couldn’t get him to tell what the surprise wuz. He only sez, sez
he:

“I am goin’ to make her a happy surprise.”

And the thought that he wuz a-goin’ to branch out and make a change, wuz
considerable of a comfort to me. And I needed comfort--yes, indeed I
did--I needed it bad. For not one single thing did I do for her that I
done right, though I tried my best to do well by her.

But she found fault with my vittles from mornin’ till night, though I am
called a excellent cook all over Jonesville, and all round the adjoining
country, out as far as Loontown, and Zoar. It has come straight back to
me by them that wouldn’t lie. But it hain’t made me vain.

But I never cooked a thing that suited Lodema, not a single thing. Most
of my vittles wuz too fresh, and then if I braced up and salted ‘em
extra so as to be sure to please her, why then they wuz briny, and hurt
her mouth.

Why, if you’ll believe it, I give her a shawl, made her a present of it;
it had even checks black and white, jest as many threads in the black
stripes as there wuz in the white, for I counted ‘em.

And she told me, after she had looked it all over and said it wuz kinder
thin and slazy, and checkered shawls had gone out of fashion, and the
black looked some as if it would fade with washin’, and the white wuzn’t
over clear, and the colors wuzn’t no ways becomin’ to her complexion,
and etcetery, etcetery.

“But,” sez she, after she had got all through with the rest of her
complaints--“if the white stripes wuz where the black wuz, and the black
where the white wuz, she should like it quite well.” And there it wuz,
even check, two and two. Wall, that wuz a sample of her doin’s. If
anybody had a Roman nose she wanted a Greecy one.

[Illustration: “IF THE WHITE STRIPES WUZ WHERE THE BLACK WUZ.”]

And if the nose wuz Greece, why then she wanted Rome.

Why, Josiah sez to me along about the third week, he said (to ourselves,
in private), “that if Lodema went to Heaven she would be dissatisfied
with it, and think it wuz livelier, and more goin’ on down to the other
place.” And he said she would get the angels all stirred up a findin’
fault with their feathers.

I told him “I would not hear such talk.”

“Wall,” sez he, “don’t you believe it?”

And I kinder turned him off, and wouldn’t tell, and told him it wuz
wicked to talk so.

“Wall,” sez Josiah, “you dassent say she wouldn’t.”

And I dassent, though I wouldn’t own it up to him, I dassent.

And if she kinder got out of other occupations for a minute durin’ them
first weeks she would be a quarrelin’ with Josiah Allen about age.

I s’pose she and Josiah wuzn’t far from the same age, for they wuz
children together. But she wanted to make out she wuz young.

And she would tell Josiah that “he seemed jest like a father to her, and
always had.” And sometimes when she felt the most curius, she would call
him “Father,” and “Pa,” and “Papa.” And it would mad Josiah Allen so
that I would have all I could do to quell him down.

Now I didn’t feel so, I didn’t mind it so much. Why, there would be
days, when she felt the curiusest, that she would call me “Mother,” and
“Ma,” and foller me round with foot-stools and things, when I went to
set down, and would kinder worry over my fallin’ off the back step, and
would offer to help me up the suller stairs, and so forth, and watchin’
over what I et, and tellin’ me folks of my age ort to be careful, and
not over-eat.

And Josiah asked me to ask her “How she felt about that time?” For she
wuz from three to four years older than I wuz.

But I wouldn’t contend with her, and the footstools come kinder handy, I
had jest as lieve have ‘em under my feet as not, and ruther. And as for
rich vittles not agreein’ with me, and my not over-eatin’, I broke that
tip by fallin’ right in with her, and not cookin’ such good things--that
quelled her down, and gaulded Josiah too.

But, as I said, it riled Josiah the worst of anything to have Lodema
call him father, for he wants to make out that he is kinder young
himself.

And sez he to her one day, about the third week, when she was a-goin’
on about how good and fatherly he looked, and how much he seemed like
a parent to her, and always had, sez he: “I wonder if I seemed like a
father to you when we wuz a-kickin’ at each other in the same cradle?”
 Sez he: “We both used to nuss out of the same bottle, any way, for
I have heard my mother say so lots of times. There wuzn’t ten days’
difference in our ages. You wuz ten days the oldest as I have always
made out.”

She screamed right out, “Why, Josiah Allen, where is your conscience to
talk in that way--and your heart?”

“In here, where everybody’s is,” sez Josiah, strikin’ himself with his
right hand--he meant to strike against his left breast, but struck too
low, kinder on his stomach.

And sez I, “That is what I have always thought, Josiah Allen. I have
always had better luck reachin’ your conscience through your stomach
than in any other way. And now,” sez I coldly, “do you go out and bring
in a pail of water.”

I used to get beat out and sick of their scufflin’s and disagreein’s,
and broke ‘em up whenever I could.

But oh! oh! how she did quarrel with Josiah Allen and that buzz saw
scheme of his’n. How light she made of that enterprise, how she demeaned
the buzz, and run the saws--till I felt that bad as I hated the
enterprise myself, I felt that a variety of loud buzz saws would be a
welcome relief from her tongue--from their two tongues; for as fur down
as she would run them buzz saws, jest so fur would Josiah Allen praise
‘em up.

[Illustration: LODEMA AND JOSIAH IN YOUTH.]

She never agreed with Josiah Allen but in jest one thing while she was
under his ruff. I happened to mention one day how extremely anxious I
wuz to have females set on the Conference; and then, wantin’ to dispute
me, and also bein’ set on that side, she run down the project, and
called it all to nort--and when too late she see that she had got over
on Josiah Allen’s side of the fence.

But it had one good effect. When that man see she wuz there, he waded
off, way out of sight of the project, and wouldn’t mention it--it madded
him so to be on the same side of the fence she wuz--so that it seemed
to happen all for the best.

Why, I took her as a dispensation from the first, and drawed all sorts
of morels from her, and sights of ‘em--sights.

But oh, it wuz tuff on me, fearful tuff.

And when she calculated and laid out to make out her visit and go, wuz
more than we could tell.



CHAPTER VIII.


For two weeks had passed away like a nite mair of the nite--and three
weeks, and four weeks--and she didn’t seem to be no nigher goin’ than
she did when she came.

And I would not make a move towards gettin’ rid of her, not if I had
dropped down in my tracts, because she wuz one of the relatives on his
side.

But I wuz completely fagged out; it did seem, as I told Tirzah Ann one
day in confidence, “that I never knew the meanin’ of the word ‘fag’
before.”

And Tirzah Ann told me (she couldn’t bear her) that if she wuz in my
place, she would start her off. Sez she:

“She has plenty of brothers and sisters, and a home of her own, and why
should she come here to torment you and father;” and sez she, “I’ll talk
to her, mother, I’d jest as leve as not.” Sez I, “Tirzah Ann, if you
say a word to her, I’ll--I’ll never put confidence in you agin;” sez I,
“Life is full of tribulations, and we must expect to bear our crosses;”
 sez I, “The old martyrs went through more than Lodema.”

Sez Tirzah Ann, “I believe Lodema would have wore out John Rogers.”

And I don’t know but she would, but I didn’t encourage her by ownin’ it
up that she would; but I declare for’t, I believe she would have been
more tegus than the nine children, and the one at the breast, any way.

Wall, as I said, it wuz durin’ the fifth week that Josiah Allen turned
right round, and used her first rate.

And when she would talk before folks about how much filial affection she
had for him, and about his always havin’ been jest like a parent to her,
and everything of the kind--he never talked back a mite, but looked
clever, and told me in confidence, “That he had turned over a new leaf,
and he wuz goin’ to surprise her--give her a happy surprise.”

And he seemed, instead of lovin’ to rile her up, as he had, to jest put
his hull mind on the idee of the joyful surprise.

Wall, I am always afraid (with reason) of Josiah Allen’s enterprizes.
But do all I could, he wouldn’t tell me one word about what he wuz goin’
to do, only he kep it up, kep a-sayin’ that,

“It wuz somethin’ I couldn’t help approvin’ of, and it wuz somethin’
that would happify me, and be a solid comfort to her, and a great gain
and honor.”

So (though I trembled some for the result) I had to let it go on, for
she wuz one of the relations on his own side, and I knew it wouldn’t do
for me to interfere too much, and meddle.

Why, he did come right out one day and give hints to me to that effect.

Sez I, “Why do you go on and be so secret about it? Why don’t you tell
your companion all about it, what you are a-goin’ to do, and advise with
her?”

And he sez, “I guess I know what I am about. She is one of the relations
on my side, and I guess I have got a few rights left, and a little
spunk.”

“Yes,” sez I, sadly, “you have got the spunk.”

“Wall,” sez he, “I guess I can spunk up, and do somethin’ for one of my
own relations, without any interference or any advice from any of the
Smith family, or anybody else.”

Sez I, “I don’t want to stop your doin’ all you can for Lodema, but why
not tell what you are a-goin’ to do?”

“It will be time enough when the time comes,” sez he. “You will find it
out in the course of next week.”

Wall, it run along to the middle of the next week. And one day I had
jest sot down to tie off a comforter.

It wuz unbleached cheese cloth that I had bought and colored with tea
leaves. It wuz a sort of a light mice color, a pretty soft gray, and I
wuz goin’ to tie it in with little balls of red zephyr woosted, and work
it in buttonhole stitch round the edge with the same.

It wuz fur our bed, Josiah’s and mine, and it wuz goin’ to be soft and
warm and very pretty, though I say it, that shouldn’t.

[Illustration: “I HAD JEST SOT DOWN TO TIE OFF A COMFORTER.”]

It wuzn’t quite so pretty as them that hain’t colored. I had ‘em for my
spare beds, cream color tied with pale blue and pink, that wuz perfectly
beautiful and very dressy; but I thought for everyday use a colored one
would be better.

Wall, I had brought it out and wuz jest a-goin’ to put it onto the
frames (some new-fashioned ones I had borrowed from Tirzah Ann for the
occasion).

And Cousin Lodema had jest observed, “that the new-fashioned frames with
legs wuzn’t good for nothin’, and she didn’t like the color of gray,
it looked too melancholy, and would be apt to depress our feelin’s too
much, and would be tryin’ to our complexions.”

And I told her “that I didn’t spoze there would be a very great
congregation in our bedroom, as a general thing in the dead of night, to
see whether it wuz becomin’ to Josiah and me or not. And, it bein’ as
dark as Egypt, our complexions wouldn’t make a very bad show any way.”

“Wall,” she said, “to tie it with red wuzn’t at all appropriate, it wuz
too dressy a color for folks of our age, Josiah’s and mine.” “Why,” sez
she, “even _I_, at _my_ age, would skurcely care to sleep under one so
gay. And she wouldn’t have a cheese cloth comforter any way.” She sort
o’ stopped to ketch breath, and Josiah sez:

“Oh, wall, Lodema, a cheese cloth comforter is better than none, and I
should think you would be jest the one to like any sort of a frame on
legs.”

But I wunk at him, a real severe and warnin’ wink, and he stopped short
off, for all the world as if he had forgot bein’ on his good behavior;
he stopped short off, and went right to behavin’, and sez he to me:

“Don’t put on your comforter to-day, Samantha, for Tirzah Ann and
Whitfield and the babe are a-comin’ over here bimeby, and Maggie is
a-comin’, and Thomas Jefferson.”

“Wall,” sez I, “that is a good reason why I should keep on with it; the
girls can help me if I don’t get it off before they get here.”

And then he sez, “Miss Minkley is a-comin’, too, and the Elder.”

“Why’ee,” sez I, “Josiah Allen, why didn’t you tell me before, so I
could have baked up somethin’ nice? What a man you are to keep things;
how long have you known it?”

“Oh, a week or so!”

“A week!” sez I; “Josiah Allen, where is your conscience? if you have
got a conscience.”

“In the same old place,” sez he, kinder hittin’ himself in the pit of
his stomach.

“Wall, I should think as much,” sez I.

And Lodema sez, sez she: “A man that won’t tell things is of all
creeters that walks the earth the most disagreeable. And I should think
the girls, Maggie and Tirzah Ann, would want to stay to home and clean
house such a day as this is. And I should think a Elder would want to
stay to home so’s to be on hand in case of anybody happenin’ to be
exercised in their minds, and wantin to talk to him on religious
subjects. And if I wuz a Elder’s wife, I should stay to home with him;
I should think it wuz my duty and my privilege. And if I wuz a married
woman, I would have enough baked up in the house all the time, so’s not
to be afraid of company.”

But I didn’t answer back. I jest sot away my frames, and went out and
stirred up a cake; I had one kind by me, besides cookies and jell tarts.

But I felt real worked up to think I hadn’t heard. Wall, I hadn’t more’n
got that cake fairly into the oven when the children come, and Elder
Minkley and his wife. And I thought they looked queer, and I thought the
Elder begun to tell me somethin’, and I thought I see Josiah wink at
him. But I wouldn’t want to take my oath whether he wunk or not, but I
_thought_ he wunk.

I wuz jest a turnin’ this over in my mind, and a carryin’ away their
things, when I glanced out of the settin’ room winder, and lo, and
behold! there wuz Abi Adsit a comin’ up to the front door, and right
behind her wuz her Pa and Ma Adsit, and Deacon Henzy and his wife,
and Miss Henn and Metilda, and Lute Pitkins and his wife, and Miss
Petengill, and Deacon Sypher and Drusilly, and Submit Tewksbury--a hull
string of ‘em as long as a procession.

Sez I, and I spoke it right out before I thought--sez I--

“Why’ee!” sez I. “For the land’s sake!” sez I, “has there been a
funeral, or anything? And are these the mourners?” sez I. “Are they
stoppin’ here to warm?”

For it wuz a cold day--and I repeated the words to myself mechanically
as it wuz, as I see ‘em file up the path.

“They be mourners, hain’t they?”

“No,” sez Josiah, who had come in and wuz a standin’ by the side of me,
as I spoke out to myself unbeknown to me--sez he in a proud axent--

“No, they hain’t mourners, they are Happyfiers; they are Highlariers;
they have come to our party. We are givin’ a party, Samantha. We are
havin’ a diamond weddin’ here for Lodema.”

“A diamond weddin’!” I repeated mechanically.

“Yes, this is my happy surprise for Lodema.”

I looked at Lodema Trumble. She looked strange. She had sunk back in her
chair. I thought she wuz a-goin’ to faint, and she told somebody the
next day, “that she did almost lose her conscientiousness.”

“Why,” sez I, “she hain’t married.”

[Illustration: “WE ARE GIVIN’ A PARTY, SAMANTHA.”]

“Wall, she ort to be, if she hain’t,” sez he. “I say it is high time for
her to have some sort of a weddin’. Everybody is a havin’ ‘em--tin, and
silver and wooden, and basswood, and glass, and etc.--and I thought it
wuz a perfect shame that Lodema shouldn’t have none of no kind--and I
thought I’d  lay to, and surprise her with one. Every other man seemed
to be a-holdin’ off, not willin’ seemin’ly that she should have one, and
I jest thought I would happify her with one.”

“Wall, why didn’t you make her a silver one, or a tin?” sez I.

“Or a paper one!” screamed Lodema, who had riz up out of her almost
faintin’ condition. “That would have been much more appropriate,” sez
she.

“Wall, I thought a diamond one would be more profitable to her. For I
asked ‘em all to bring diamonds, if they brought anything. And then I
thought it would be more suitable to her age.”

“Why!” she screamed out. “They have to be married seventy-five years
before they can have one.”

“Yes,” sez he dreemily, “I thought that would be about the right
figure.”

Lodema wuz too mad to find fault or complain or anything. She jest
marched up-stairs and didn’t come down agin that night. And the young
folks had a splendid good time, and the old ones, too.

Tirzah Ann and Maggie had brought some refreshments with ‘em, and so had
some of the other wimmen, and, with what I had, there wuz enough, and
more than enough, to refresh ourselves with.

Wall, the very next mornin’ Lodema marched down like a grenideer, and
ordered Josiah to take her to the train. And she eat breakfast with her
things on, and went away immegiately after, and hain’t been back here
sense.

And I wuz truly glad to see her go, but wuz sorry she went in such a
way, and I tell Josiah he wuz to blame,

But he acts as innocent as you pleese. And he goes all over the
arguments agin every time I take him to do about it. He sez “she wuz old
enough to have a weddin’ of some kind.”

And of course I can’t dispute that, when he faces me right down, and
sez:

“Hain’t she old enough?”

And I’ll say, kinder short--

“Why, I spoze so!”

“Wall,” sez he, “wouldn’t it have been profitable to her if they had
brought diamonds? Wouldn’t it have been both surprisin’ and profitable?”
 And sez he, “I told ‘em expressly to bring diamonds if they had more
than they wanted. I charged old Bobbet and Lute Pitkins specially on the
subject. I didn’t want ‘em to scrimp themselves; but,” sez I, “if you
have got more diamonds than you want, Lute, bring over a few to Lodema.”

[Illustration: “IF YOU HAVE GOT MORE DIAMONDS THAN YOU WANT.”]

“Yes,” sez I, coldly, “he wuz dretful likely to have diamonds more then
he wanted, workin’ out by day’s work to support his family. You know
there wuzn’t a soul you invited that owned a diamond.”

“How did I know what they owned? I never have prowled round into their
bureau draws and things, tryin’ to find out what they had; they might
have had quarts of ‘em, and I not know it.”

Sez I, “You did it to make fun of Lodema and get rid of her. And it only
makes it worse to try to smooth it over.” Sez I, “I’d be honorable about
it if I wuz in your place, and own up.”

“Own up? What have I got to own up? I shall always say if my orders wuz
carried out, it would have been a profitable affair for Lodema, and it
would--profitable and surprisin’.”

And that is all I can get him to say about it, from that day to this.



CHAPTER IX.


But truly the labors that descended onto my shoulders immegiately after
Lodema’s departure wuz hard enough to fill up my hull mind, and tax
every one of my energies.

Yes, my labors and the labors of the other female Jonesvillians wuz deep
and arjuous in the extreme (of which more and anon bimeby).

I had been the female appinted in a private and becomin’ female way, to
go to Loontown to see the meetin’ house there that we heard they had
fixed over in a cheap but commojous way. And for reasons (of which more
and anon) we wanted to inquire into the expense, the looks on’t, etc.,
etc.

So I persuaded Josiah Allen to take me over to Loontown on this pressin’
business, and he gin his consent to go on the condition that we should
stop for a visit to Cephas Bodley’ses. Josiah sets store by ‘em. You
see they are relations of ourn and have been for some time, entirely
unbeknown to us, and they’d come more’n a year ago a huntin’ of us up.
They said they “thought relations ought to be hunted up and hanged
together.” They said “the idea of huntin’ us up had come to ‘em after
readin’ my books.” They told me so, and I said, “Wall!” I didn’t add nor
diminish to that one “wall,” for I didn’t want to act too backward, nor
too forward. I jest kep’ kinder neutral, and said, “Wall!”

You see Cephas’ses father’s sister-in-law wuz stepmother to my aunt’s
second cousin on my father’s side. And Cephas said that “he had felt
more and more, as years went by, that it wuz a burnin’ shame for
relations to not know and love each other.” He said “he felt that he
loved Josiah and me dearly.”

I didn’t say right out whether it wuz reciprokated or not I kinder said,
“Wall!” agin.

And I told Josiah, in perfect confidence and the wood-house chamber,
“that I had seen nearer relations than Mr. Bodley’ses folks wuz to us,”

[Illustration: “CEPHAS SAID IT WUZ A BURNIN’ SHAME FOR RELATIONS TO
NOT KNOW AND LOVE EACH OTHER.”]

Howsumever, I done well by ‘em. Josiah killed a fat turkey, and I baked
it, and done other things for their comfort, and we had quite a good
time.  Cephas wuz ruther flowery and enthusiastick, and his mouth and
voice wuz ruther large, but he meant well, I should judge, and we had
quite a good time.

She wuz very freckled, and a second-day Baptist by perswasion, and wuz
piecin’ up a crazy bedquilt. She went a-visitin’ a good deal, and got
pieces of the women’s dresses where she visited for blocks. So it wuz
quite a savin’ bedquilt, and very good-lookin’, considerin’.

But to resoom and continue on. Cephas’ses folks made us promise on our
two sacred honors, Josiah’s honor and mine, that we would pay back the
visit, for, as Cephas said, “for relatives to live so clost to each
other, and not to visit back and forth, wuz a burnin’ shame and a
disgrace.” And Josiah promised that we would go right away after
sugerin’.

We wouldn’t promise on the New Testament, as Cephas wanted us to (he is
dretful enthusiastick); but we gin good plain promises that we would go,
and laid out to keep our two words.

Wall, we got there onexpected, as they had come onto us. And we found
‘em plunged into trouble. Their only child, a girl, who had married a
young lawyer of Loontown, had jest lost her husband with the typus, and
they wuz a-makin’ preparations for the funeral when we got there. She
and her husband had come on a visit, and he wuz took down bed-sick there
and died.

I told ‘em I felt like death to think I had descended down onto ‘em at
such a time.

But Cephas said he wuz jest dispatchin’ a messenger for us when we
arrove, for, he said, “in a time of trouble, then wuz the time, if ever,
that a man wanted his near relations clost to him.”

And he said “we had took a load offen him by appearin’ jest as we
did, for there would have been some delay in gettin’ us there, if the
messenger had been dispatched.”

He said “that mornin’ he had felt so bad that he wanted to die--it
seemed as if there wuzn’t nothin’ left for him to live for; but now he
felt that he had sunthin’ to live for, now his relatives wuz gathered
round him.”

Josiah shed tears to hear Cephas go on. I myself didn’t weep none, but I
wuz glad if we could be any comfort to ‘em, and told ‘em so.

And I told Sally Ann, that wuz Cephas’ses wife, that I would do anything
I could to help ‘em. And she said everything wuz a-bein’ done that
wuz necessary. She didn’t know of but one thing that wuz likely to be
overlooked and neglected, and that wuz the crazy bedquilt. She said
“she would love to have that finished to throw over a lounge in the
settin’-room, that wuz frayed out on the edges, and if I felt like it,
it _would_ be a great relief to her to have me take it right offen her
hands and finish it.”

So I took out my thimble and needle (I always carry such necessaries
with me, in a huzzy made expressly for that purpose), and I sot down and
went to piecin’ up. There wuz seventeen blocks to piece up, each one
crazy as a loon to look at, and it wuz all to set together.

She had the pieces, for she had been off on a visitin’ tower the week
before, and collected of ‘em.

So I sot in quiet and the big chair in the settin’-room, and pieced up,
and see the preparations goin’ on round us.

I found that Cephas’ses folks lived in a house big and showy-lookin’,
but not so solid and firm as I had seen.

It wuz one of the houses, outside and inside, where more pains had been
took with the porticos and ornaments than with the underpinnin’.

It had a showy and kind of a shaky look. And I found that that extended
to Cephas’ses business arrangements. Amongst the other ornaments of his
buildin’s wuz mortgages, quite a lot of’em, and of almost every variety.
He had gin his only child, S. Annie (she wuz named after her mother,
Sally Ann, but spelt it this way), he had gin S. Annie a showy
education, a showy weddin’, and a showy settin’-out. But she had
had the good luck to marry a sensible man, though poor.

[Illustration: “So I SOT IN QUIET AND THE BIG CHAIR.”]

He took S. Annie and the brackets, the piano and hangin’ lamps and
baskets and crystal bead lambrequins, her father had gin her, moved
‘em all into a good, sensible, small house, and went to work to get a
practice and a livin’. He was a lawyer by perswasion.

Wall, he worked hard, day and night, for three little children come to
‘em pretty fast, and S. Annie consumed a good deal in trimmin’s and
cheap lace to ornament ‘em; she wuz her father’s own girl for ornament.
But he worked so hard, and had so many irons in the fire, and kep’ ‘em
all so hot, that he got a good livin’ for ‘em, and begun to lay up money
towards buyin’ ‘em a house--a home.

He talked a sight, so folks said that knew him well, about his consumin’
desire and aim to get his wife and children into a little home of their
own, into a safe little haven, where they could live if he wuz called
away. They say that that wuz on his mind day and night, and wuz what
nerved his hand so in the fray, and made him so successful. Wall, he had
laid up about nine hundred dollars towards a home, every dollar on
it earned by hard work and consecrated by this deathless hope and
affection. The house he had got his mind on only cost about a thousand
dollars. Loontown property is cheap.

Wall, he had laid up nine hundred, and wuz a-beginnin’ to save on the
last hundred, for he wouldn’t run in debt a cent any way, when he wuz
took voyalent sick there to Cephas’ses; he and S. Annie had come home
for a visit of a day or two, and he bein’ so run down, and weak with his
hard day work and his night work, that he suckumbed to his sickness, and
passed away the day before I got there.

Wall, S. Annie wuz jest overcome with grief the day I got there, but the
day follerin’ she begun to take some interest and help her father in
makin’ preparations for the funeral.

The body wuz embalmed, accordin’ to Cephas’ses and S. Annie’s wish, and
the funeral wuz to be on the Sunday follerin’, and on that Cephas and S.
Annie now bent their energies.

To begin with, S. Annie had a hull suit of clear crape made for herself,
with a veil that touched the ground; she also had three other suits
commenced, for more common wear, trimmed heavy with crape, one of which
she ordered for sure the next week, for she said, “she couldn’t stir out
of the house in any other color but black.”

I knew jest how dear crape wuz, and I tackled her on the subject, and
sez I--

“Do you know, S. Annie, these dresses of your’n will cost a sight?”

“Cost?” sez she, a-bustin’ out a-cryin’. “What do I care about cost? I
will do everything I can to respect his memory. I do it in remembrance
of him.”

Sez I, gently, “S. Annie, you wouldn’t forget him if you wuz dressed in
white. And as for respect, such a life as his, from all I hear of it,
don’t need crape to throw respect on it; it commands respect, and gets
it from everybody.”

“But,” sez Cephas, “it would look dretful odd to the neighbors if she
didn’t dress in black.” Sez he in a skairful tone, and in his intense
way--

[Illustration: “WHAT IS LIFE WORTH WHEN FOLKS TALK?”]

“I would ruther resk my life than to have her fail in duty in this way;
it would make talk. And.” sez he, “what is life worth when folks talk?”
 I turned around the crazed block and tackled it in a new place (more
luny than ever it seemed to me), and sez I, mekanickly--

“It is pretty hard work to keep folks from talkin’; to keep ‘em from
sayin’ somethin’.”

But I see from their looks it wouldn’t do to say anything more, so I had
to set still and see it go on.

At that time of year flowers wuz dretful high, but S. Annie and Cephas
had made up their minds that they must have several flower-pieces from
the city nighest to Loontown.

One wuz a-goin’ to be a gate ajar, and one wuz to be a gate wide open,
and one wuz to be a big book. Cephas asked what book I thought would be
preferable to represent. And I mentioned the Bible.

But Cephas sez, “No, he didn’t think he would have a Bible; he didn’t
think it would be appropriate, seein’ the deceased wuz a lawyer.” He
said “he hadn’t quite made up his mind what book to have. But anyway it
wuz to be in flowers--beautiful flowers.” Another piece wuz to be his
name in white flowers on a purple background of pansies. His name wuz
Wellington Napoleon Bonaparte Hardiman. And I sez to Cephas--“To save
expense, you will probable have the moneygram W.N.B.H.?”

“Oh, no,” sez he.

Sez I, “hen the initials of his given names, and the last name in
full.”

“Oh, no,” he said; “it wuz S. Annie’s wish, and hisen, that the hull
name should be put on. They thought it would show more respect.”

I sez, “Where Wellington is now, that hain’t a goin’ to make any
difference, and,” sez I, “Cephas, flowers are dretful high this time of
year, and it is a long name.”

But Cephas said agin that he didn’t care for expense, so long as respect
wuz done to the memory of the deceased. He said that he and S. Annie
both felt that it wuz their wish to have the funeral go ahead of any
other that had ever took place in Loontown or Jonesville. He said that
S. Annie felt that it wuz all that wuz left her now in life, the memory
of such a funeral as he deserved.

Sez I, “There is his children left for her to live for,” sez I--“three
little bits of his own life, for her to nourish, and cherish, and look
out for.”

“Yes,” sez Cephas, “and she will do that nobly, and I will help her.
They are all goin’ to the funeral, too, in deep-black dresses.” He said
“they wuz too little to realize it now, but in later and maturer years
it would be a comfort to ‘em to know they had took part in such a
funeral as that wuz goin’ to be, and wuz dressed in black.”

“Wall,” sez I (in a quiet, onassumin’ way I would gin little hints of my
mind on the subject), “I am afraid that will be about all the comforts
of life the poor little children will ever have,” sez I. “It will be if
you buy many more flower-pieces and crape dresses.”

Cephas said “it wouldn’t take much crape for the children’s dresses,
they wuz so little, only the baby’s; that would have to be long.”

Sez I, “The baby would look better in white, and it will take sights of
crape for a long baby dress.”

“Yes, but S. Annie can use it afterwards for veils. She is very
economical; she takes it from me. And she feels jest as I do, that the
baby must wear it in respect to her father’s memory.”

Sez I, “The baby don’t know crape from a clothes-pin.”

“No,” sez Cephas, “but in after years the thought of the respect she
showed will sustain her.”

“Wall,” sez I, “I guess she won’t have much besides thoughts to live on,
if things go on in this way.”

I would give little hints in this way, but they wuzn’t took. Things went
right on as if I hadn’t spoke. And I couldn’t contend, for truly, as a
bad little boy said once on a similar occasion, “it wuzn’t my funeral,”
 so I had to set and work on that insane bedquilt and see it go on. But
I sithed constant and frequent, and when I wuz all alone in the room I
indulged in a few low groans.



CHAPTER X.


We dressmakers wuz in the house, to stay all the time till the dresses
wuz done; and clerks would come around, anon, if not oftener, with
packages of mournin’ goods, and mournin’ jewelry, and mournin’
handkerchiefs, and mournin’ stockings, and mournin’ stockin’-supporters,
and mournin’ safety-pins, and etc., etc., etc., etc., etc.

Every one of ‘em, I knew, a-wrenchin’ boards offen the sides of that
house that Wellington had worked so hard to get for his wife and little
ones.

Wall, the day of the funeral come. It wuz a wet, drizzly day, but Cephas
wuz up early, to see that everything wuz as he wanted it to be.

As fur as I wuz concerned, I had done my duty, for the crazy bedquilt
wuz done; and though brains might totter as they looked at it, I felt
that it wuzn’t my fault. Sally Ann spread it out with complacency over
the lounge, and thanked me, with tears in her eyes, for my noble deed.

Along quite early in the mornin’, before the show commenced, I went in
to see Wellington.

He lay there calm and peaceful, with a look on his face as if he had got
away at last from a atmosphere of show and sham, and had got into the
great Reality of life.

It wuz a good face, and the worryment and care that folks told me had
been on it for years had all faded away. But the look of determination,
and resolve, and bravery,--that wuz ploughed too deep in his face to be
smoothed out, even by the mighty hand that had lain on it. The resolved
look, the brave look with which he had met the warfare of life, toiled
for victory over want, toiled to place his dear and helpless ones in a
position of safety,--that look wuz on his face yet, as if the deathless
hope and endeavor had gone on into eternity with him.

And by the side of him, on a table, wuz the big high flower-pieces,
beginnin’ already to wilt and decay.

Wall, it’s bein’ such an uncommon bad day, there wuzn’t many to the
funeral. But we rode to the meetin’-house in Loontown in a state and
splendor that I never expect to again. Cephas had hired eleven mournin’
coaches, and the day bein’ so bad, and so few a-turnin’ out to the
funeral, that in order to occupy all the coaches--and Cephas thought it
would look better and more popular to have ‘em all occupied--we divided
up, and Josiah went in one, alone, and lonesome as a dog, as he said
afterwards to me. And I sot up straight and oncomfortable in another one
on ‘em, stark alone.

Cephas had one to himself, and his wife another one, and two old maids,
sisters of Cephas’ses who always made a point of attendin’ funerals,
they each one of ‘em had one. S. Annie and her children, of course, had
the first one, and then the minister had one, and one of the trustees in
the neighborhood had another; so we lengthened out into quite a crowd,
all a-follerin’ the shiny hearse, and the casket all covered with showy
plated nails. I thought of it in jest that way, for Wellington, I knew,
the real Wellington, wuzn’t there. No, he wuz fur away--as fur as the
Real is from the Unreal. Wall, we filed into the Loontown meetin’-house
in pretty good shape. The same meetin’-house I had been sent to
reconoiter. But Cephas hadn’t no black handkerchief, and he looked
worried about it. He had shed tears a-tellin’ me about it, what a
oversight it wuz, while I wuz a fixin’ on his mournin’ weed. He took it
into his head to have a deeper weed at the last minute, so I fixed it
on. He had the weed come up to the top of his hat and lap over. I never
see so tall a weed. But it suited Cephas; he said “he thought it showed
deep respect.”

“Wall,” sez I, “it is a deep weed, anyway--the deepest I ever see.” And
he said as I wuz a sewin’ it on, he a-holdin’ his hat for me, “that
Wellington deserved it; he deserved it all.”

But, as I say, he shed tears to think that his handkerchief wuzn’t
black-bordered. He said “it wuz a fearful oversight; it would probably
make talk.”

“But,” I sez, “mebby it won’t be noticed.”

[Illustration: “AS A PROCESSION WE WUZ MIDDLIN’ LONG, BUT RUTHER
THIN.”]

“Yes, it will,” sez he. “It will be noticed.” And sez he, “I don’t care
about myself, but I am afraid it will reflect onto Wellington. I am
afraid they will think it shows a lack of respect for him. For
Wellington’s sake I feel cut down about it.”

And I sez, “I guess where Wellington is now, the color of a handkerchief
border hain’t a-goin’ to make much difference to him either way.”

And I don’t spoze it wuz noticed much, for there wuzn’t more’n ten or a
dozen folks there when we went in. We went in in Injin file mostly by
Cephas’ses request, so’s to make more show. And as a procession we wuz
middlin’ long, but ruther thin.

The sermon wuz not so very good as to quality, but abundant as to
quantity. It wuz, as nigh as I could calkerlate, about a hour and
three-quarters long. Josiah whispered to me along about the last that
“we had been there over seven hours, and his legs wuz paralyzed.”

And I whispered back that “seven hours would take us into the night, and
to stretch his feet out and pinch ‘em,” which he did.

But it wuz long and tegus. My feet got to sleep twice, and I had hard
work to wake ‘em up agin. The sermon meant to be about Wellington, I
s’pose; he did talk a sight about him, and then he kinder branched off
onto politics, and then the Inter-State bill; he kinder favored it, I
thought.

Wall, we all got drippin’ wet a-goin’ home, for Cephas insisted on our
gettin’ out at the grave, for he had hired some uncommon high singers
(high every way, in price and in notes) to sing at the grave.

And so we disembarked in the drippin’ rain, on the wet grass, and formed
a procession agin. And Cephas had a long exercise light there in the
rain. But the singin’ wuz kinder jerky and curius, and they had got
their pay beforehand, so they hurried it through. And one man, the
tenor, who wuz dretful afraid of takin’ cold, hurried through his part
and got through first, and started on a run for the carriage. The others
stood their grounds till the piece wuz finished, but they put on some
dretful curius quavers. I believe they had had chills; it sounded like
it.

Take it altogether, I don’t believe anybody got much satisfaction out of
it, only Cephas. S. Annie sp’ilt her dress and bonnet entirely--they wuz
wilted all down; and she ordered another suit jest like it before
she slept. Wall, the next mornin’ early two men come with plans for
monuments. Cephas had telegrafted to ‘em to come with plans and bid for
the job of furnishin’ the monument.

And after a good deal of talk on both sides, Cephas and S. Annie
selected one that wuz very high and p’inted.

The men stayed to dinner, and I said to Cephas out to one side--

“Cephas, that monument is a-goin’ to cost a sight.”

“Wall,” sez he, “we can’t raise too high a one. Wellington deserved it
all.”

Sez I, “Won’t that and all these funeral expenses take about all the
money he left?”

“Oh, no!” sez he. “He had insured his life for a large amount, and it
all goes to his wife and children. He deserves a monument if a man ever
did.”

“But,” sez I, “don’t you believe that Wellington would ruther have S.
Annie and the children settled down in a good little home with sumthin’
left to take care of ‘em, than to have all this money spent in perfectly
useless things?”

“_Useless!_” sez Cephas, turnin’ red. “Why,” sez he, “if you wuzn’t a
near relation I should resent that speech bitterly.”

“Wall,” sez I, “what do all these flowers, and empty carriages, and
silver-plated nails, and crape, and so forth--what does it all amount
to?”

“Respect and honor to his memory,” sez Cephas, proudly.

Sez I, “Such a life as Wellington’s had them; no body could take ‘em
away nor deminish ‘em. Such a brave, honest life is crowned with honor
and respect any way. It don’t need no crape, nor flowers, nor monuments
to win ‘em. And, at the same time,” sez I dreamily, “if a man is mean,
no amount of crape, or flower-pieces, or flowery sermons, or obituries,
is a-goin’ to cover up that meanness. A life has to be lived out-doors
as it were; it can’t be hid. A string of mournin’ carriages, no matter
how long, hain’t a-goin’ to carry a dishonorable life into honor, and
no grave, no matter how low and humble it is, is a-goin’ to cover up a
honorable life.

“Such a life as Wellington’s don’t need no monument to carry up the
story of his virtues into the heavens; it is known there already. And
them that mourn his loss don’t need cold marble words to recall his
goodness and faithfulness. The heart where the shadow of his eternal
absence has fell don’t need crape to make it darker.

“Wellington wouldn’t be forgot if S. Annie wore pure white from day
today. No, nobody that knew Wellington, from all I have hearn of him,
needs crape to remind ‘em that he wuz once here and now is gone.

“Howsomever, as fur as that is concerned, I always feel that mourners
must do as they are a mind to about crape, with fear and tremblin’--that
is, if they are well off, and _can_ do as they are a mind to; and the
same with monuments, flowers, empty coaches, etc. But in this case,
Cephas Bodley, I wouldn’t be a doin’ my duty if I didn’t speak my mind.
When I look at these little helpless souls that are left in a cold world
with nothin’ to stand between them and want but the small means their pa
worked so hard for and left for the express purpose of takin’ care of
‘em, it seems to me a foolish thing, and a cruel thing, to spend all
that money on what is entirely onnecessary.”

“Onnecessary!” sez Cephas, angrily. “Agin I say, Josiah Allen’s wife,
that if it wuzn’t for our close relationship I should turn on you. A
worm will turn,” sez he, “if it is too hardly trampled on.”

“I hain’t trampled on you,” sez I, “nor hain’t had no idea on’t. I wuz
only statin’ the solemn facts and truth of the matter. And you will see
it some time, Cephas Bodley, if you don’t now.”

Sez Cephas, “The worm has turned, Josiah Allen’s wife! Yes, I feel that
I have got to look now to more distant relations for comfort. Yes, the
worm has been stomped on too heavy.”

He looked cold, cold as a iceickle almost. And I see that jest the few
words I had spoke, jest the slight hints I had gin, hadn’t been took as
they should have been took. So I said no more. For agin the remark of
that little bad boy came up in my mind and restrained me from sayin’ any
more.

Truly, as the young male child observed, “it wuzn’t my funeral.”

We went home almost immegiately afterwards, my heart nearly a-bleedin’
for the little children, poor little creeters, and Cephas actin’ cold
and distant to the last And we hain’t seen ‘em sence. But news has come
from them, and come straight. Josiah heerd to Jonesville all about it.
And though it is hitchin’ the democrat buggy on front of the mare--to
tell the end of the funeral here--yet I may as well tell it now and be
done with it.

The miller at Loontown wuz down to the Jonesville mill to get the loan
of some bags, and Josiah happened to be there to mill that day, and
heerd all about it.

Cephas had got the monument, and the ornaments on it cost fur more than
he expected. There wuz a wreath a-runnin’ round it clear from the bottom
to the top, and verses a kinder runnin’ up it at the same time. And it
cost fearful. Poetry a-runnin’ up, they say, costs fur more than it duz
on a level.

Any way, the two thousand dollars that wuz insured on Wellington’s life
wuzn’t quite enough to pay for it. But the sale of his law library and
the best of the housen’ stuff paid it. The nine hundred he left went,
every mite of it, to pay the funeral expenses and mournin’ for the
family.

[Illustration: CARRIED TO THE COUNTY POOR HOUSE.]

And as bad luck always follers on in a procession, them mortgages of
Cephas’ses all run out sort o’ together. His creditors sold him out,
and when his property wuz all disposed of it left him over fourteen
hundred dollars in debt.

The creditors acted perfectly greedy, so they say--took everything they
could; and one of the meanest ones took that insane bedquilt that I
finished. That _wuz_ mean. They say Sally Ann crumpled right down
when that wuz took. Some say that they got hold of that tall weed of
Cephas’ses, and some dispute it; some say that he wore it on the last
ride he took in Loontown.

But, howsomever, Cephas wuz took sick, Sally Ann wuzn’t able to do
anything for their support, S. Annie wuz took down with the typhus, and
so it happened the very day the monument wuz brought to the Loontown
cemetery, Cephas Bodley’s folks wuz carried to the county house, S.
Annie, the children and all.

And it happened dretful curius, but the town hired that very team that
drawed the monument there, to take the family back.

It wuz a good team.

The monument wuzn’t set up, for they lacked money to pay for the
underpinnin’! (Wuz n’t it curius, Cephas Bodley never would think of the
underpinnin’ to anything?) But it lay there by the side of the road, a
great white shape.

And they say the children wuz skairt, and cried when they went by
it--cried and wept.

But I believe it wuz because they wuz cold and hungry that made ‘em cry.
I don’t believe it wuz the monument.



CHAPTER XI.


[Illustration:]

A few days follerin’ on and ensuin’ after this
eppisode, Submit Tewksburv wuz a takin’ supper with me. She had come
home with me from the meetin’ house where we had been to work all day.

I had urged her to stay, for she lived a mile further on the road, and
had got to walk home afoot.

And she hain’t any too well off, Submit hain’t--she has to work hard for
every mite of food she eats, and clothes she wears, and fuel and lights,
etc., etc.

So I keep her to dinners and suppers all I can, specially when we are
engaged in meetin’ house work, for as poor as Submit is, she will insist
on doin’ for the meetin’ house jest as much as any other female woman in
Jonesville.

She is quite small boneded, and middlin’ good lookin’ for a women of her
years. She has got big dark eyes, very soft and mellow lookin’ in
expression--and a look deep down into ‘em, as if she had been waitin’
for something, for some time. Her hair is gettin’ quite gray now, but
its original color was auburn, and she has got quite a lot of it--kinder
crinkly round her forward. Her complexion is pale. She is a very good
lookin’ woman yet, might marry any day of the week now, I hain’t no
doubt of it. She is a single woman, but is well thought on in
Jonesville, and the southern part of Zoar, where she has relatives on
her mother’s side.

[Illustration: SUBMIT TEWKSBURY.]

She has had chances to my certain knowledge (widowers and such).

But if all the men in the world should come and stand in rows in front
of her gate with gilded crowns in their hands all ready to crown her,
and septers all ready for her to grasp holt of, and wield over the
world, she would refuse every one of ‘em.

She has had a disappointment, Submit has. And she looked at the world so
long through tears, that the world got to lookin’ sort o’ dim like and
shadowy to her, and the whole men race looked to her fur off and misty,
as folks will when you look at ‘em through a rain.

She couldn’t marry one of them shadows of men, if she tried, and she
hain’t never tried. No, her heart always has been, and is now, fur away,
a-travellin’ through unknown regions, unknown, and yet more real to her
than Jonesville or Zoar, a-follerin’ the one man in the world who is a
reality to her. Submit wuz engaged to a young Methodist minister by the
name of Samuel Danker. I remember him well. A good lookin’ young fellow
at the time, with blue eyes and light hair, ruther long and curly, and
kinder wavin’ back from his forward, and a deep spiritual look in his
eyes. In fact, his eyes looked right through the fashions and follys of
the civilized world, into the depths of ignorance, rivers of ruin and
despair, that wuz a-washin’ over a human race, black jungles where naked
sin and natural depravities crouched hungry for victims.

Samuel Danker felt that he had got to go into heathen lands as a
missionary. He wuz engaged to Submit, and loved her dearly, and he urged
her to go too.

But Submit had a invalid father on her hands, a bed rid grandfather, and
three young brothers, too young to earn a thing, and they all on ‘em
together hadn’t a cent of money to their names. They had twenty-five
acres of middlin’ poor land, and a old house.

Wall, Submit felt that she couldn’t leave these helpless ones and go
to more foreign heathen lands. So, with a achin’ heart, she let Samuel
Danker go from her, for he felt a call, loud, and she couldn’t counsel
him to shet up his ears, or put cotton into ‘em. Submit Tewksbury had
always loved and worked for the Methodist meetin’ house (she jined it
on probation when she wuz thirteen). But although she always had been
extremely liberal in givin’, and had made a practice of contributin’
every cent she could spare to the meetin’ house, it wuz spozed that
Samuel Danker wuz the biggest offerin’ she had ever give to it.

Fur it wuz known that he went to her the night before he sot sail, took
supper with her, and told her she should decide the matter for him,
whether he went or whether he staid.

It wuz spozed his love for Submit wuz so great that it made him waver
when the time come that he must leave her to her lot of toil and
sacrifice and loneliness.

But Submit loved the Methodist meetin’ house to that extent, she leaned
so hard on the arm of Duty, that she nerved up her courage anew, refused
to accept the sacrifice of his renunciation, bid him go to his great
work, and quit himself like a man--told him she would always love him,
pray for him, be constant to him. And she felt that the Master they both
wanted to serve would some day bring him back to her.

So he sailed away to his heathens--and Submit stayed to home with her
five helpless males and her achin’ heart. And if I had to tell which
made her the most trouble, I couldn’t to save my life.

She knew the secret of her achin’ heart, and the long dark nights she
kep awake with it. The neighbors couldn’t understand that exactly, for
there hain’t no language been discovered yet that will give voice to
the silent crys of a breakin’ heart, a tender heart, a constant heart,
cryin’ out acrost the grayness of dreary days acrost the blackness of
lonely nights.

But we could see her troubles with the peevish paralasys of age, with
the tremendus follys of undisciplined youth.

But Submit took care of the hull caboodle of ‘em; worked out some by
days’ works, to get more necessaries for ‘em than the poor little
farm would bring in; nursed the sick on their sick-beds and on their
death-beds, till she see ‘em into Heaven--or that is where we spoze
they went to, bein’ deservin’ old males both on ‘em, her father and her
grandfather, and in full connectin with the Methodist Episcopel meetin’
house.

She took care of her young brothers, patient with ‘em always, ready to
mend bad rents in their clothin’ and their behavior--tryin’ to prop up
their habits and their morals, givin’ ‘em all the schoolin’ she could,
givin’ ‘em all a good trade, all but the youngest, him she kep with her
always till the Lord took him (scarlet fever), took him to learn the
mysterius trade of the immortals.

Submit had a hard fit of sickness after that. And when she got up agin,
there wuz round her pale forward a good many white hairs that wuz orburn
before the little boy went away from her.

Sense that, the other boys have married, and Submit has lived alone in
the old farm-house, lettin’ the farm out on shares. It is all run
down; she don’t get much from it; it don’t yield much but trouble and
burdocks, but as little as she gets, she always will, as I say, do her
full share, and more than her share, for the meetin’ house.

[Illustration: “HE TOOK SUPPER WITH HER FOR THE LAST TIME.”]

Some think it is on account of her inherient goodness, and some think
it is on account of Samuel Danker.

We all spose she hain’t forgot Samuel. And they do say that every year
when the day comes round, that he took supper with her for the last
time, she puts a plate on for him--the very one he eat on last---a pink
edged chiny plate, with gilt sprigs, the last one left of her mother’s
first set of chiny.

That is what they _say_, I hain’t never seen the plate.

It is now about twenty years sense Samuel Danker went to heathen lands.
And as it wuz a man-eatin’ tribe he went to preach to, and as he hain’t
been heern of from that day to this, it is spozed that they eat him up
some years ago.

But it is thought that Submit hain’t gin up hope yet. We spoze so, but
don’t know, on account of her never sayin’ anything on the subject. But
we judge from the plate.

Wall, as I say (and I have episoded fearfully, fearfully), Submit took
supper with me that night. And after Josiah had put out his horse (he
had been to Jonesville for the evenin’ mail, and stopped for us at the
meetin’ house on his way back), he took the _World_ out of his pocket,
and perused it for some time, and from that learned the great news that
wimmen wuz jest about to be held up agin, to see if her strength wuz
sufficient to set on the Conference.

And oh! how Josiah Allen went on about it to Submit and me, all the
while we wuz a eatin’ supper--and for more’n a hour afterwuds.



CHAPTER XII.


Submit wuz very skairt to heern him go on (she felt more nervous on
account of an extra hard day’s work), and I myself wuz beat out, but I
wuzn’t afraid at all of him, though he did go on elegant, and dretful
empressive and even skairful.

He stood up on the same old ground that men have always stood up on,
the ground of man’s great strength and capability, and wimmen’s utter
weakness, helplessness, and incapacity. Josiah enlarged almost wildly on
the subject of how high, how inaccessibley lofty the Conference wuz, and
the utter impossibility of a weak, helpless, fragaile bein’ like a women
ever gettin’ up on it, much less settin’ on it. And then, oh how vividly
he depictered it, how he and every other male Methodist in the land
loved wimmen too well, worshipped ‘em too deeply to put such a wearin’
job onto ‘em. Oh how Josiah Allen soared up in eloquence. Submit shed
tears, or, that is, I thought she did--I see her wipe her eyes any way.
Some think that about the time the Samuel Danker anniversary comes
round, she is more nervous and deprested. It wuz very near now, and
take that with her hard work that day, it accounts some for her extra
depression--though, without any doubt, it wuz Josiah’s talk that started
the tears.

I couldn’t bear to see Submit look so mournful and deprested, and so,
though I wuz that tired myself that I could hardly hold my head up, yet
I did take my bits in my teeth, as you may say, and asked him--

What the awful hard job wuz that he and other men wuz so anxus to ward
offen wimmen.

And he sez, “Why, a settin’ on the Conference.”

And I sez, “I don’t believe that is such a awful hard job to tackle.”

“Yes, indeed, it is,” sez Josiah in his most skairful axent, “yes, it
is.”

And he shook his head meenin’ly and impressively, and looked at me and
Submit in as mysterius and strange a way, es I have ever been looked at
in my life, and I have had dretful curius looks cast onto me, from first
to last. And he sez in them deep impressive axents of hisen,

“You jest try it once, and see--I have sot on it, and I know.”

Josiah wuz sent once as a delegate to the Methodist Conference, so I
spozed he did know.

But I sez, “Why you come home the second day when you sot as happy as a
king, and you told me how you had rested off durin’ the two days, and
how you had visited round at Uncle Jenkins’es, and Cousin Henn’s, and
you said that you never had had such a good time in your hull life, as
you did when you wuz a settin’. You looked as happy as a king, and acted
so.”

Josiah looked dumbfounded for most a quarter of a minute. For he knew my
words wuz as true es anything ever sot down in Matthew, Mark, or Luke,
or any of the other old patriarks. He knew it wuz Gospel truth, that
he had boasted of his good times a settin’, and as I say for nearly a
quarter of a minute he showed plain signs of mortification.

But almost imegietly he recovered himself, and went on with the doggy
obstinacy of his sect: “Oh, wall! Men can tackle hard jobs, and get some
enjoyment out of it too, when it is in the line of duty. One thing that
boys em’ up, and makes em’ happy, is the thought that they are a keepin’
trouble and care offen wimmen. That is a sweet thought to men, and
always wuz. And there wuz great strains put onto our minds, us men that
sot, that wimmen couldn’t be expected to grapple with, and hadn’t ort to
try to. It wuz a great strain onto us.”

“What was the nater of the strain?” sez I. “I didn’t know as you did a
thing only sot still there and go to sleep. _You_ wuz fast asleep there
most the hull of the time, for it come straight to me from them that
know. And all that Deacon Bobbet did who went with you wuz to hold up
his hand two or three times a votin’. I shouldn’t think that wuz so
awful wearin’.”

And agin I sez, “What wuz the strain?”

But Josiah didn’t answer, for that very minute he remembered a pressin’
engagement he had about borrowin’ a plow. He said he had got to go up to
Joe Charnick’s to get his plow. (I don’t believe he wanted a plow that
time of night.) But he hurried away from the spot. And soon after Submit
went home lookin’ more deprested and down-casted than ever.

And Josiah Allen didn’t get home till _late_ at night. I dare persume to
say it wuz as late as a quarter to nine when that man got back to the
bosom of his family.

And I sot there all alone, and a-meditatin’ on things, and a-wonderin’
what under the sun he wuz a-traipsin up to Joe Charnick’s for at that
time of night, and a-worryin’ some for fear he wuz a-keepin’ Miss
Charnick up, and a-spozin’ in my mind what Miss Charnick would do, to
get along with the meetin’ house, and the Conference question, if she
wuz a member. (She is a _very_ sensible woman, Jenette Charnick is,
_very_, and a great favorite with me, and others.)

And I got to thinkin’ how prosperus and happy she is now, and how much
she had went through. And I declare the hull thing come back to me, all
the strange and curius circumstances connected with her courtship and
marriage, and I thought it all out agin, the hull story, from beginnin’
to end.

The way it begun wuz--and the way Josiah Allen and me come to have any
connectin with the story wuz as follers:

Some time ago, and previus, we had a widder come to stay with us a
spell, she that wuz Tamer Shelmadine, Miss Trueman Pool that now is.

Her husband died several years ago, and left her not over and above
well off. And so she goes round a-visitin’, and has went ever sense his
death. And finds sights of faults with things wherever she is, sights of
it.

Trueman wuz Josiah’s cousin, on his own side, and I always made a
practice of usin’ her quite well. She used to live neighbor to me before
I wuz married, and she come and stayed nine weeks.

She is a tall spindlin’ woman, a Second Adventist by perswasion, and
weighs about ninety-nine pounds.

Wall, as I say, she means middlin’ well, and would be quite agreeable
if it wuzn’t for a habit she has of thinkin’ what she duz is a leetle
better than anybody else can do, and wantin’ to tell a leetle better
story than anybody else can.

Now she thinks she looks better than I do. But Josiah sez she can’t
begin with me for looks, and I don’t spoze she can, though of course it
hain’t to be expected that I would want it told of that I said so. No, I
wouldn’t want it told of pro or con, especially con. But I know Josiah
Allen has always been called a pretty good judge of wimmen’s looks.

[Illustration: “SHE IS A TALL SPINDLIN’ WOMAN.”]

And now she thinks she can set hens better than I can--and make better
riz biscuit. She jest the same as told me so. Any way, the first time
I baked bread after she got here, she looked down on my loaves real
haughty, yet with a pityin’ look, and sez:

“It is very good for yeast, but I always use milk emptin’s.”

And she kinder tested her head, and sort o’ swept out of the room, not
with a broom, no, she would scorn to sweep out a room with a broom or
help me in any way, but she sort o’ swept it out with her mean. But I
didn’t care, I knew my bread wuz good.

Now if anybody is sick, she will always tell of times when she has been
sicker. She boasts of layin’ three nights and two days in a fit. But we
don’t believe it, Josiah and me don’t. That is, we don’t believe she lay
there so long, a-runnin’.

We believe she come out of ‘em occasionally.

But you couldn’t get her to give off a hour or a minute of the time.
Three nights and two days she lay there a-runnin’, so she sez, and she
has said it so long, that we spoze, Josiah and me do, that she believes
it herself now.



CHAPTER XIII.


Curius, hain’t it? How folks will get to tellin’ things, and finally
tell ‘em so much, that finally they will get to believin’ of ‘em
themselves--boastin’ of bein’ rich, etc., or bad. Now I have seen folks
boast over that, act real haughty because they had been bad and got over
it. I’ve seen temperance lecturers and religious exhorters boast sights
and sights over how bad they had been. But they wuzn’t tellin’ the
truth, though they had told the same thing so much that probable they
had got to thinkin’ so.

But in the case of one man in petickuler, I found out for myself, for I
didn’t believe what he wuz a sayin’ any of the time.

Why, he made out in evenin’ meetin’s, protracted and otherwise, that he
had been a awful villain. Why no pirate wuz ever wickeder than he made
himself out to be, in the old times before he turned round and become
pious.

[Illustration: “HIS FACE WUZ A GOOD MORAL FACE.”]

But I didn’t believe it, for he had a good look to his face, all but the
high headed look he had, and sort o’ vain.

But except this one look, his face wuz a good moral face, and I knew
that no man could cut up and act as he claimed that he had, without
carryin’ some marks on the face of the cuttin’ up, and also of the
actin’.

And so, as it happened, I went a visitin’ (to Josiah’s relations) to the
very place where he had claimed to do his deeds of wild badness, and I
found that he had always been a pattern man--never had done a single
mean act, so fur as wuz known.

Where wuz his boastin’ then? As the Bible sez, why, it wuz all vain
talk. He had done it to get up a reputation. He had done it because he
wuz big feelin’ and vain. And he had got so haughty over it, and had
told of it so much, that I spoze he believed in it himself.

Curius! hain’t it? But I am a eppisodin’, and to resoom. Trueman’s wife
would talk jest so, jest so haughty and high headed, about the world
comin’ to a end.

She’d dispute with everybody right up and down if they disagreed with
her--and specially about that religion of hern. How sot she wuz, how
extremely sot.

But then, it hain’t in me, nor never wuz, to fight anybody for any
petickuler religion of theirn. There is sights and sights of different
religions round amongst different friends of mine, and most all on ‘em
quite good ones.

That is, they are agreeable to the ones who believe in ‘em, and not over
and above disagreeable to me.

Now it seems to me that in most all of these different doctrines and
beliefs, there is a grain of truth, and if folks would only kinder hold
onto that grain, and hold themselves stiddy while they held onto it,
they would be better off.

But most folks when they go to follerin’ off a doctrine, they foller too
fur, they hain’t megum enough.

Now, for instance, when you go to work and whip anybody, or hang ‘em, or
burn ‘em up for not believin’ as you do, that is goin’ too fur.

It has been done though, time and agin, in the world’s history, and
mebby will be agin.

But it hain’t reasonable. Now what good will doctrines o’ any kind do to
anybody after they are burnt up or choked to death?

You see such things hain’t bein’ megum. Because I can’t believe jest as
somebody else duz, it hain’t for me to pitch at ‘em and burn ‘em up, or
even whip ‘em.

No, indeed! And most probable if I should study faithfully out their
beliefs, I would find one grain, or mebby a grain and a half of real
truth in it.

[Illustration: “EF I FELL ON A STUN.”]

Now, for instance, take the doctrines of Christian Healin’, or Mind
Cure. Now I can’t exactly believe that if I fell down and hurt my head
on a stun--I cannot believe as I am a layin’ there, that I hain’t fell,
and there hain’t no stun--and while I am a groanin’ and a bathin’ the
achin’ bruise in anarky and wormwood, I can’t believe that there hain’t
no such thing as pain, nor never wuz.

No, I can’t believe this with the present light I have got on the
subject.

But yet, I have seen them that this mind cure religion had fairly riz
right up, and made ‘em nigher to heaven every way--so nigh to it that
seemin’ly a light out of some of its winders had lit up their faces with
its glowin’ repose, its sweet rapture.

I’ve seen ‘em, seen ‘em as the Patent Medicine Maker observes so
frequently, “before and after takin’.”

Folks that wuz despondent and hopeless, and wretched actin’, why, this
belief made ‘em jest blossom right out into a state of hopefulness, and
calmness, and joy--refreshin’ indeed to contemplate.

Wall now, the idee of whippin’ anybody for believin’ anything that
brings such a good change to ‘em, and fills them and them round ‘em with
so much peace and happiness.

Why, I wouldn’t do it for a dollar bill. And as for hangin’ ‘em, and
brilin’ ‘em on gridirons, etc., why, that is entirely out of the
question, or ort to be.

And now, it don’t seem to me that I ever could make a tree walk off, by
lookin’ at it, and commandin’ it to--or call some posys to fall down
into my lap, right through, the plasterin’--

Or send myself, or one of myselfs, off to Injy, while the other one of
me stayed to Jonesville.

Now, honestly speakin’, it don’t seem to me that I ever could learn to
do this, not at my age, any way, and most dead with rheumatiz a good
deal of the time.

I most know I couldn’t.

But then agin I have seen believers in Theosiphy that could do wonders,
and seemed indeed to have got marvelous control over the forces of
Natur.

And now the idee of my whippin’ ‘em for it. Why you wouldn’t ketch me at
it.

And Spiritualism now! I spoze, and I about know that there are lots
of folks that won’t ever see into any other world than this, till the
breath leaves their body.

Yet i’ve seen them, pure sweet souls too, as I ever see, whose eyes
beheld blessed visions withheld from more material gaze.

Yes, i’ve neighbored with about all sorts of religius believers, and
never disputed that they had a right to their own religion.

And I’ve seen them too that didn’t make a practice of goin’ to any
meetin’ houses much, who lived so near to God and his angels that they
felt the touch of angel hands on their forwards every day of their
lives, and you could see the glow of the Fairer Land in their rapt eyes.

They had outgrown the outward forms of religion that had helped them
at first, jest as children outgrow the primers and ABC books of their
childhood and advance into the higher learnin’.

I’ve seen them folks i’ve neighbored with ‘em. Human faults they had,
or God would have taken them to His own land before now. Their
imperfections, I spoze sort o’ anchored ‘em here for a spell to a
imperfect world.

But you could see, if you got nigh enough to their souls to see anything
about ‘em--you could see that the anchor chains wuz slight after all,
and when they wuz broke, oh how lightly and easily they would sail away,
away to the land that their rapt souls inhabited even now.

Yes, I’ve seen all sorts of religius believers and I wuzn’t goin’ to be
too hard on Tamer for her belief, though I couldn’t believe as she did.



CHAPTER XIV.


He come to our house a visitin’ along the first week in June, and the
last day in June wuz the day they had sot for the world to come to an
end. I, myself, didn’t believe she knew positive about it, and Josiah
didn’t either. And I sez to her, “The Bible sez that it hain’t agoin’
to be revealed to angels even, or to the Son himself, but only to the
Father when that great day shall be.” And sez I to Trueman’s wife, sez
I, “How should _you_ be expected to know it?”

Sez she, with that same collected together haughty look to her, “My name
wuzn’t mentioned, I believe, amongst them that _wuzn’t_ to know it!”

And of course I had to own up that it wuzn’t. But good land! I didn’t
believe she knew a thing more about it than I did, but I didn’t dispute
with her much, because she wuz one of the relatives on his side--you
know you have to do different with ‘em than you do with them on your own
side--you have to. And then agin, I felt that if it didn’t come to an
end she would be convinced that she wuz in the wrong on’t, and if she
did we should both of us be pretty apt to know it, so there wuzn’t much
use in disputin’ back and forth.

But she wuz firm as iron in her belief. And she had come up visitin’ to
our home, so’s to be nigh when Trueman riz. Trueman wuz buried in the
old Risley deestrict, not half a mile from us on a back road. And she
naterally wanted to be round at the time.

She said plain to me that Trueman never could seem to get along without
her. And though she didn’t say it right out, she carried the idea (and
Josiah resented it because Trueman was a favorite cousin of his’n on
his own side.) She jest the same as said right out that Trueman, if she
wuzn’t by him to tend to him, would be jest as apt to come up wrong end
up as any way.

Josiah didn’t like it at all.

Wall, she had lived a widowed life for a number of years, and had said
right out, time and time agin, that she wouldn’t marry agin. But Josiah
thought, and I kinder mistrusted myself, that she wuz kinder on the
lookout, and would marry agin if she got a chance--not fierce, you know,
or anything of that kind, but kinder quietly lookin’ out and standin’
ready. That wuz when she first come; but before she went away she acted
fierce.

[Illustration: “BURIED IN THE OLD RISLEY DEESIRICT.”]

Wall, there wuz sights of Adventists up in the Risley deestrict, and
amongst the rest wuz an old bachelder, Joe Charnick.

And Joe Charnick wuz, I s’poze, of all Advents, the most Adventy. He
jest _knew_ the world wuz a comin’ to a end that very day, the last day
of June, at four o’clock in the afternoon. And he got his robe all made
to go up in. It wuz made of a white book muslin, and Jenette Finster
made it. Cut it out by one of his mother’s nightgowns--so she told me in
confidence, and of course I tell it jest the same; I want it kep.

She was afraid Joe wouldn’t like it, if he knew she took the nightgown
for a guide, wantin’ it, as he did, for a religious purpose.

But, good land! as I told her, religion or not, anybody couldn’t cut
anything to look anyhow without sumpthin’ fora guide, and she bein’ an
old maiden felt a little delicate about measurin’ him.

His mother wuz as big round as he wuz, her weight bein’ 230 by the
steelyards, and she allowed 2 fingers and a half extra length--Joe is
tall. She gathered it in full round the neck, and the sleeves (at his
request) hung down like wings, a breadth for each wing wuz what she
allowed. Jenette owned up to me (though she wouldn’t want it told of
for the world, for it had been sposed for years, that he and she had a
likin’ for each other, and mebby would make a match some time, though
what they had been a-waitin’ for for the last 10 years nobody knew). But
she allowed to me that when he got his robe on, he wuz the worst lookin’
human bein’ that she ever laid eyes on, and sez she, for she likes a
joke, Jenette duz: “I should think if Joe looked in the glass after he
got it on, his religion would be a comfort to him; I should think he
would be glad the world _wuz_ comin’ to a end.”

But he _didn’t_ look at the glass, Jenette said he didn’t; he wanted to
see if it wuz the right size round the neck. Joe hain’t handsome, but
he is kinder good-lookin’, and he is a good feller and got plenty to do
with, but bein’ kinder big-featured, and tall, and hefty, he must
have looked like fury in the robe. But he is liked by everybody, and
everybody is glad to see him so prosperous and well off.

He has got 300 acres of good land, “be it more or less,” as the deed
reads; 30 head of cows, and 7 head of horses (and the hull bodies of
‘em). And a big sugar bush, over 1100 trees, and a nice little sugar
house way up on a pretty side hill amongst the maple trees. A good, big,
handsome dwellin’ house, a sort of cream color, with green blinds; big
barn, and carriage house, etc., etc., and everything in the very best of
order. He is a pattern farmer and a pattern son--yes, Joe couldn’t be a
more pattern son if he acted every day from a pattern.

He treats his mother dretful pretty, from day to day. She thinks that
there hain’t nobody like Joe; and it wuz s’pozed that Jenette thought so
too.

But Jenette is, and always wuz, runnin’ over with common sense, and she
always made fun and laughed at Joe when he got to talkin’ about his
religion, and about settin’ a time for the world to come to a end. And
some thought that that wuz one reason why the match didn’t go off, for
Joe likes her, everybody could see that, for he wuz jest such a great,
honest, open-hearted feller, that he never made any secret of it.
And Jenette liked Joe _I_ knew, though she fooled a good many on the
subject. But she wuz always a great case to confide in me, and though
she didn’t say so right out, which wouldn’t have been her way, for, as
the poet sez, she wuzn’t one “to wear her heart on the sleeves of her
bask waist,” still, I knew as well es I wanted to, that she thought her
eyes of him. And old Miss Charnick jest about worshipped Jenette, would
have her with her, sewin’ for her, and takin’ care of her--she wuz sick
a good deal, Mother Charnick wuz. And she would have been tickled most
to death to have had Joe marry her and bring her right home there.

And Jenette wuz a smart little creeter, “smart as lightnin’,” as Josiah
always said.

She had got along in years, Jenette had, without marryin’, for she staid
to hum and took care of her old father and mother and Tom. The other
girls married off, and left her to hum, and she had chances, so it wuz
said, good ones, but she wouldn’t leave her father and mother, who wuz
gettin’ old, and kinder bed-rid, and needed her. Her father, specially,
said he couldn’t live, and wouldn’t try to, if Jenette left ‘em, but he
said, the old gentleman did, that Jenette should be richly paid for her
goodness to ‘em.

That wuzn’t what made Jenette good, no, indeed; she did it out of the
pure tenderness and sweetness of her nature and lovin’heart. But I used
to love to hear the old gentleman talk that way, for he wuz well off,
and I felt that so far as money could pay for the hull devotion of a
life, why, Jenette would be looked out for, and have a good home, and
enough to do with. So she staid to hum, as I say, and took care of’em
night and day; sights of watching and wearisome care she had, poor
little creeter; but she took the best of care of ‘em, and kep ‘em kinder
comforted up, and clean, and brought up Tom, the youngest boy, by hand,
and thought her eyes on him.

And he wuz a smart chap--awful smart, as it proved in the end; for he
married when he wuz 21, and brought his wife (a disagreeable creeter)
home to the old homestead, and Jenette, before they had been there 2
weeks, wuz made to feel that her room wuz better than her company.

That wuz the year the old gentleman died; her mother had died 3 months
prior and beforehand.

Her brother, as I said, wur smart, and he and his wife got round the old
man in some way and sot him against Jenette, and got everything he had.

He wuz childish, the old man wuz; used to try to put his pantaloons on
over his head, and get his feet into his coat sleeves, etc., etc.

And he changed his will, that had gi’n Jenette half the property, a good
property, too, and gi’n it all to Tom, every mite of it, all but one
dollar, which Jenette never took by my advice.

For I wuz burnin’ indignant at old Mr. Finster and at Tom. Curius, to
think such a girl as Jenette had been--such a patient, good creeter, and
such a good-tempered one, and everything--to think her pa should have
forgot all she had done, and suffered, and gi’n up for ‘em, and give
the property all to that boy, who had never done anything only to spend
their money and make Jenette trouble.

But then, I s’poze it wuz old Mr. Finster’s mind, or the lack on’t, and
I had to stand it, likewise so did Jenette.

But I never sot a foot into Tom Finster’s house, not a foot after that
day that Jenette left it. I wouldn’t. But I took her right to my house,
and kep her for 9 weeks right along, and wuz glad to.

That wuz some 10 years prior and before this, and she had gone round
sewin’ ever sense. And she wuz beloved by everybody, and had gone round
highly respected, and at seventy-five cents a day.

Her troubles, and everybody that knew her, knew how many she had of ‘em,
but she kep ‘em all to herself, and met the world and her neighbors with
a bright face.

If she took her skeletons out of the closet to air ‘em, and I s’poze she
did, everybody duz; they have to at times, to see if their bones are in
good order, if for nothin’ else. But if she ever did take ‘em out and
dust ‘em, she did it all by herself. The closet door wuz shet up and
locked when anybody wuz round. And you would think, by her bright,
laughin’ face, that she never heard the word skeleton, or ever listened
to the rattle of a bone.

And she kep up such a happy, cheerful look on the outside, that I s’poze
it ended by her bein’ cheerful and happy on the inside.

The stiddy, good-natured, happy spirit that she cultivated at first
by hard work, so I s’poze; but at last it got to be second nater,
the qualities kinder struck in and she _wuz_ happy, and she _wuz_
contented--that is, I s’poze so.

Though I, who knew Jenette better than anybody else, almost, knew how
tuff, how fearful tuff it must have come on her, to go round from home
to home--not bein’ settled down at home anywhere. I knew jest what a
lovin’ little home body she wuz. And how her sweet nater, like the sun,
would love to light up one bright lovin’ home, and shine kinder stiddy
there, instead of glancin’ and changin’ about from one place to another,
like a meteor.

Some would have liked it; some like change and constant goin’ about, and
movin’ constantly through space--but I knew Jenette wuzn’t made on the
meteor plan. I felt sorry for Jenette, down deep in my heart, I did; but
I didn’t tell her so; no, she wouldn’t have liked it; she kep a brave
face to the world. And as I said, her comin’ wuz looked for weeks and
weeks ahead, in any home where she wuz engaged to sew by the day.

Everybody in the house used to feel the presence of a sunshiny, cheerful
spirit. One that wuz determined to turn her back onto troubles she
couldn’t help and keep her face sot towards the Sun of Happiness. One
who felt good and pleasant towards everybody, wished everybody well.
One who could look upon other folks’es good fortune without a mite
of jealousy or spite. One who loved to hear her friends praised and
admired, loved to see ‘em happy. And if they had a hundred times the
good things she had, why, she was glad for their sakes, that they had
‘em, she loved to see ‘em enjoy ‘em, if she couldn’t.

And she wuz dretful kinder cunnin’ and cute, Jenette wuz. She would make
the oddest little speeches; keep everybody laughin’ round her, when she
got to goin’.

[Illustration: “Dretful kinder cunnin’ and cute, Jenette wuz.”]

Yes, she wuz liked dretful well, Jenette wuz. Her face has a kind of a
pert look on to it, her black eyes snap, a good-natured snap, though,
and her nose turns up jest enough to look kinder cunnin’, and her hair
curls all over her head.

Smart round the house she is, and Mother Charnick likes that, for she is
a master good housekeeper. Smart to answer back and joke. Joe is slow of
speech, and his big blue eyes won’t fairly get sot onto anything, before
Jenette has looked it all through, and turned it over, and examined it
on the other side, and got through with it.

Wall, she wuz to work to Mother Charnick’s makin’ her a black alpacka
dress, and four new calico ones, and coverin’ a parasol.

A good many said that Miss Charnick got dresses a purpose for Jenette to
make, so’s to keep her there. Jenette wouldn’t stay there a minute only
when she wuz to work, and as they always kep a good, strong, hired girl,
she knew when she wuz needed, and when she wuzn’t. But, of course, she
couldn’t refuse to sew for her, and at what she wuz sot at, though she
must have known and felt that Miss Charnick wuz lavish in dresses. She
had 42 calico dresses, and everybody knew it, new ones, besides woosted.
But, anyway, there she was a sewin’ when the word came that the world
was a comin’ to a end on the 30th day of June, at 4 o’clock in the
afternoon.

Miss Charnick wuz a believer, but not to the extent that Joe was. For
Jenette asked her if she should stop sewin’, not sposin’ that she would
need the dresses, specially the four calico ones, and the parasol in
case of the world’s endin’.

And she told Jenette, and Jenette told me, so’s I know it is true, “that
she might go right on, and get the parasol cover, and the trimmins to
the dresses, cambrick, and linin’ and things, and hooks and eyes.”

And Miss Charnick didn’t prepare no robe. But Jenette mistrusted, though
Miss Charnick is close-mouthed, and didn’t say nothin’, but Jenette
mistrusted that she laid out, when she sees signs, to use a nightgown.

She had piles of the nicest ones, that Jenette had made for her from
time to time, over 28, all trimmed off nice enough for day dresses, so
Jenette said, trimmed with tape trimmin’s, some of ‘em, and belted down
in front.

Wall, they had lots of meetin’s at the Risley school-house, as the time
drew near. And Miss Trueman Pool went to every one on ‘em.

She had been too weak to go out to the well, or to the barn. She wanted
dretfully to see some new stanchils that Josiah had been a makin’, jest
like some that Pool had had in his barn. She wanted to see ‘em dretful,
but was too weak to walk. And I had had kind of a tussle in my own mind,
whether or not I should offer to let Josiah carry her out; but kinder
hesitated, thinkin’ mebby she would get stronger.

But I hain’t jealous, not a mite. It is known that I hain’t all through
Jonesville and Loontown. No, I’d scorn it. I thought Pool’s wife would
get better and she did.

One evenin’ Joe Charnick came down to bring home Josiah’s augur, and
the conversation turned onto Adventin’. And Miss Pool see that Joe wuz
congenial on that subject; he believed jest as she did, that the world
would come to an end the 30th. This was along the first part of the
month.

[Illustration: “Joe Charnick came down to bring home Josiah’s augur.”]

He spoke of the good meetin’s they wuz a-havin’ to the Risley
school-house, and how he always attended to every one on ‘em. And the
next mornin’ Miss  Trueman Pool gin out that she wuz a-goin’ that
evenin’. It wuz a good half a mile away, and I reminded her that Josiah
had to be away with the team, for he wuz a-goin’ to Loontown, heavy
loaded, and wouldn’t get back till along in the evenin’.

But she said “that she felt that the walk would do her good.”

I then reminded her of the stanchils, but she said “stanchils and
religion wuz two separate things.” Which I couldn’t deny, and didn’t try
to. And she sot off for the school-house that evenin’ a-walkin’ a foot.
And the rest of her adventins and the adventins of Joe I will relate in
another epistol; and I will also tell whether the world come to an end
or not. I know folks will want to know, and I don’t love to keep folks
in onxiety--it hain’t my way.



CHAPTER XV.


Wall, from that night, Miss Trueman Pool attended to the meetins at the
Risley school-house, stiddy and constant. And before the week wuz out
Joe Charnick had walked home with her twice. And the next week he
carried her to Jonesville to get the cloth for her robe, jest like
his’n, white book muslin. And twice he had come to consult her on a
Bible passage, and twice she had walked up to his mother’s to consult
with her on a passage in the Apockraphy. And once she went up to see if
her wings wuz es deep and full es his’n. She wanted ‘em jest the same
size.

Miss Charnick couldn’t bear her. Miss Charnick wuz a woman who had
enjoyed considerble poor health in her life, and she had now, and had
been havin’ for years, some dretful bad spells in her stomach--a sort of
a tightness acrost her chest. And Trueman’s wife argued with her that
her spells had been worse, and her chest had been tighter. And the
old lady didn’t like that at all, of course. And the old lady took
thoroughwert for ‘em, and Trueman’s wife insisted on’t that thoroughwert
wuz tightenin’.

And then there wuz some chickens in a basket out on the stoop, that the
old hen had deserted, and Miss Charnick wuz a bringin’ ‘em up by hand.
And Mother Chainick went out to feed ‘em, and Trueman’s wife tosted her
head and said, “she didn’t approve of it--she thought a chicken ought to
be brung up by a hen.”

But Miss Charnick said, “Why, the hen deserted ‘em; they would have
perished right there in the nest.”

But Trueman’s wife wouldn’t gin in, she stuck right to it, “that it wuz
a hen’s business, and nobody else’s.”

And of course she had some sense on her side, for of course it is a
hen’s business, her duty and her prevelege to bring up her chickens. But
if she won’t do it, why, then, somebody else has got to--they ought to
be brung. I say Mother Charnick wuz in the right on’t. But Trueman’s
wife had got so in the habit of findin’ fault, and naggin’ at me, and
the other relations on Trueman’s side and hern, that she couldn’t seem
to stop it when she knew it wuz for her interest to stop.

And then she ketched a sight of the alpacker dress Jenette wuz a-makin’
and she said “that basks had gone out.”

And Miss Charnick was over partial to ‘em (most too partial, some
thought), and thought they wuz in the height of the fashion. But
Trueman’s wife ground her right down on it.

“Basks _wuz out_, fer she knew it, she had all her new ones made
polenay.”

And hearin’ ‘em argue back and forth for more’n a quarter of an hour,
Jenette put in and sez (she thinks all the world of Mother Charnick),
“Wall, I s’pose you won’t take much good of your polenays, if you have
got so little time to wear ‘em.”

And then Trueman’s wife (she wuz meen-dispositioned, anyway) said
somethin’ about “hired girls keepin’ their place.”

And then Mother Charnick flared right up and took Jenette’s part. And
Joe’s face got red; he couldn’t bear to see Jenette put upon, if she wuz
makin’ fun of his religeon. And Trueman’s wife see that she had gone too
fur, and held herself in, and talked good to Jenette, and flattered up
Joe, and he went home with her and staid till ten o’clock.

They spent a good deal of their time a-huntin’ up passages, to prove
their doctrine, in the Bible, and the Apockraphy, and Josephus, and
others.

It beat all how many Trueman’s wife would find, and every one she found
Joe would seem to think the more on her. And so it run along, till folks
said they wuz engaged, and Josiah and me thought so, too.

And though Jenette wuzn’t the one to say anything, she begun to look
kinder pale and mauger. And when I spoke of it to her, she laid it to
her liver. And I let her believe I thought so too. And I even went so
fur as to recommend tansey and camomile tea, with a little catnip mixed
in--I did it fur blinders. I knew it wuzn’t her liver that ailed her. I
knew it wuz her heart. I knew it wuz her heart that wuz a-achin’.

Wall, we had our troubles, Josiah and me did. Trueman’s wife wuz dretful
disagreeable, and would argue us down, every separate thing we tried to
do or say. And she seemed more high-headed and disagreeable than ever
sence Joe had begun to pay attention to her. Though what earthly good
his attention wuz a-goin’ to do, wuz more than I could see, accordin’ to
her belief.

But Josiah said, “he guessed Joe wouldn’t have paid her any attention,
if he hadn’t thought that the world wuz a-comin’ to a end so soon. He
guessed he wouldn’t want her round if it wuz a-goin’ to stand.”

Sez I, “Josiah, you are a-judgin’ Joe by yourself.” And he owned up that
he wuz.

Wall, the mornin’ of the 30th, after Josiah and me had eat our
breakfast, I proceeded to mix up my bread. I had set the yeast
overnight, and I wuz a mouldin’ it out into tins when Trueman’s wife
come down-stairs with her robe over her arm. She wanted to iron it out
and press the seams.

I had baked one tin of my biscuit for breakfast, and I had kep ‘em warm
for Trueman’s wife, for she had been out late the night before to a
meetin’ to Risley school-house, and didn’t come down to breakfast. I
had also kep some good coffee warm for her, and some toast and steak.

She laid her robe down over a chair-back, and sot down to her breakfast,
but begun the first thing to find fault with me for bein’ to work on
that day. She sez, “The idee, of the last day of the world, and you
a-bein’ found makin’ riz biscuit, yeast ones!” sez she.

“Wall,” sez I, “I don’t know but I had jest as soon be found a-makin’
riz biscuit, a-takin’ care of my own household, as the Lord hes
commanded me to, as to be found a-sailin’ round in a book muslin Mother
Hubbard.”

“It hain’t a Mother Hubbard!” sez she.

“Wall,” sez I, “I said it for oritory. But it is puckered up some like
them, and you know it.” Hers wuz made with a yoke.

And Josiah sot there a-fixin’ his plantin’ bag. He wuz a-goin’ out that
mornin’ to plant over some corn that the crows had pulled up. And she
bitterly reproved him. But he sez, “If the world don’t come to a end,
the corn will be needed.”

“But it will,” she sez in a cold, haughty tone.

[Illustration: “WALL,” SEZ HE, “IF IT DOES, I MAY AS WELL BE DOIN’
THAT AS TO BE SETTIN’ ROUND.”]

“Wall,” sez he, “if it does, I may as well be a-doin’ that as to be
settin’ round.” And he took his plantin’ bag and went out. And then she
jawed me for upholdin’ him.

And sez she, as she broke open a biscuit and spread it with butter
previous to eatin’ it, sez she, “I should think _respect_, respect for
the great and fearful thought of meetin’ the Lord, would scare you out
of the idea of goin’ on with your work.”

Sez I calmly, “Does it scare you, Trueman’s wife?”

“Wall, not exactly scare,” sez she, “but lift up, lift up far above
bread and other kitchen work.”

And again she buttered a large slice, and I sez calmly, “I don’t s’poze
I should be any nearer the Lord than I am now. He sez He dwells inside
of our hearts, and I don’t see how He could get any nearer to us than
that. And anyway, what I said to you I keep a-sayin’, that I think He
would approve of my goin’ on calm and stiddy, a-doin’ my best for the
ones He put in my charge here below, my husband, my children, and my
grandchildren.” (I some expected Tirzah Ann and the babe home that day
to dinner.)

“Wall, you feel very diffrent from some wimmen that wuz to the
school-house last night, and act very diffrent. They are good Christian
females. It is a pity you wuzn’t there. P’raps your hard heart would
have melted, and you would have had thoughts this mornin’ that would
soar up above riz biscuit.”

And as she sez this she begun on her third biscuit, and poured out
another cup of coffee. And I, wantin’ to use her well, sez, “What did
they do there?”

“Do!” sez she, “why, it wuz the most glorious meetin’ we ever had. Three
wimmen lay at one time perfectly speechless with the power. And some of
em’ screemed so you could hear ‘em fer half a mile.”

I kep on a-mouldin’ my bread out into biscuit (good shaped ones, too, if
I do say it), and sez calmly, “Wall, I never wuz much of a screemer. I
have always believed in layin’ holt of the duty next to you, and doin’
_some_ things, things He has _commanded_. Everybody to their own way.
I don’t condemn yourn, but I have always seemed to believe more in the
solid, practical parts of religion, than the ornimental. I have always
believed more in the power of honesty, truth, and justice, than in the
power they sometimes have at camp and other meetins. Howsumever,” sez I,
“I don’t say but what that power is powerful, to the ones that have it,
only I wuz merely observin’ that it never wuz _my_ way to lay speechless
or holler much--not that I consider hollerin’ wrong, if you holler from
principle, but I never seemed to have a call to.”

“You would be far better if you did,” sez Trueman’s wife, “far better.
But you hain’t good enough.”

“Oh!” sez I, reasonably, “I could holler if I wanted to, but the Lord
hain’t deef. He sez specilly, that He hain’t, and so I never could see
the _use_ in hollerin’ to Him. And I never could see the use of tellin’
Him in public so many things as some do. Why He _knows_ it. He _knows_
all these things. He don’t need to have you try to enlighten Him as if
you wuz His gardeen--as I have heard folks do time and time agin. He
_knows_ what we are, what we need. I am glad, Trueman’s wife,” sez I,
“that He can look right down into our hearts, that He is right there in
‘em a-knowin’ all about us, all our wants, our joys, our despairs, our
temptations, our resolves, our weakness, our blindness, our defects, our
regrets, our remorse, our deepest hopes, our inspiration, our triumphs,
our glorys. But when He _is_ right there, in the midst of our soul, our
life, why, _why_ should we kneel down in public and holler at Him?”

“You would be glad to if you wuz good enough,” sez she; “if you had
attained unto a state of perfection, you would feel like it.”

That kinder riled me up, and I sez, “Wall, I have lived in this house
with them that wuz perfect, and that is bad enough for me, without bein’
one of ‘em myself. For more disagreeable creeters,” sez I, a prickin’ my
biscuit with a fork, “more disagreeable creeters I never laid eyes on.”

Trueman’s wife thinks she is perfect, she has told me so time and
agin--thinks she hain’t done anything wrong in upwards of a number of
years.

But she didn’t say nothin’ to this, only begun agin about the wickedness
and immorality of my makin’ riz biscuit that mornin’, and the deep
disgrace of Josiah Allen keepin’ on with his work.

But before I could speak up and take his part, for I _will_ not hear my
companion found fault with by any female but myself, she had gathered up
her robe, and swept upstairs with it, leavin’ orders for a flatiron to
be sent up.

Wall, the believers wuz all a-goin’ to meet at the Risley school-house
that afternoon. They wuz about 40 of ‘em, men and wimmen. And I told
Josiah at noon, I believed I would go down to the school-house to the
meetin’. And he a-feelin’, I mistrust, that if they should happen to be
in the right on’t, and the world should come to a end, he wanted to be
by the side of his beloved pardner, he offered to go too. But he never
had no robe, no, nor never thought of havin’.

The Risley school-house stood in a clearin’, and had tall stumps round
it in the door-yard. And we had heard that some of the believers wuz
goin’ to get up on them stumps, so’s to start off from there. And sure
enough, we found it wuz the calculation of some on ‘em.

The school-boys had made steps up the sides of some of the biggest
stumps, and lots of times in political meetin’s men had riz up on ‘em to
talk to the masses below. Why I s’poze a crowd of as many as 45 or 48,
had assembled there at one time durin’ the heat of the campain.

But them politicians had on their usual run of clothes, they didn’t have
on white book muslin robes. Good land!



CHAPTER XVI.


Wall, lots of folks had assembled to the school-house when we got there,
about 3 o’clock P.M.--afternoon. Believers, and world’s people, all
a-settin’ round on seats and stumps, for the school-house wuz small and
warm, and it wuz pleasanter out-doors.

We had only been there a few minutes when Mother Charnick and Jenette
walked in. Joe had been there for sometime, and he and the Widder Pool
wuz a-settin’ together readin’ a him out of one book. Jenette looked
kinder mauger, and Trueman’s wife looked haughtily at her, from over the
top of the him book.

Mother Charnick had a woosted work-bag on her arm. There might have been
a night gown in it, and there might not. It wuz big enough to hold one,
and it looked sort o’ bulgy. But it wuz never known--Miss Charnick is a
smart woman. It never wuz known what she had in the bag.

Wall, the believers struck up a him, and sung it through--as mournful,
skairful sort of a him as I ever hearn in my hull life; and it swelled
out and riz up over the pine trees in a wailin’, melancholy sort of a
way, and wierd--dretful wierd.

And then a sort of a lurid, wild-looking chap, a minister, got up and
preached the wildest and luridest discourse I ever hearn in my hull
days. It wuz enough to scare a snipe. The very strongest and toughest
men there turned pale, and wimmen cried and wept on every side of me,
and wept and cried.

I, myself, didn’t weep. But I drawed nearer to my companion, and kinder
leaned up against him, and looked off on the calm blue heavens, the
serene landscape, and the shinin’ blue lake fur away, and thought--jest
as true as I live and breathe, I thought that I didn’t care much, if God
willed it to be so, that my Josiah and I should go side by side, that
very day and minute, out of the certainties of this life into the
mysteries of the other, out of the mysteries of this life into
the certainties of the other.

[Illustration: “A SORT OF A LURID, WILD-LOOKING CHAP.”]

For, thinks I to myself, we have got to go into that other world pretty
soon, Josiah and me have. And if we went in the usual way, we had got to
go alone, each on us. Terrible thought! We who had been together under
shine and shade, in joy and sorrow. Our two hands that had joined at the
alter, and had clung so clost together ever sence, had got to leggo of
each other down there in front of the dark gateway. Solemn gateway! So
big that the hull world must pass through it--and yet so small that the
hull world has got to go through it alone, one at a time.

My Josiah would have to stand outside and let me go down under the dark,
mysterious arches, alone--and he knows jest how I hate to go anywhere
alone, or else I would have to stop at the gate and bid him good-by. And
no matter how much we knocked at the gate, or how many tears we shed
onto it, we couldn’t get through till our time come, we had _got_ to be
parted.

And now if we went on this clear June day through the crystal gateway of
the bendin’ heavens--we two would be together for weal or for woe. And
on whatever new, strange landscape we would have to look on, or wander
through, he would be right by me. Whatever strange inhabitants the
celestial country held, he would face ‘em with me. Close, close by my
side, he would go with me through that blue, lovely gateway of the soft
June skies into the City of the King. And it wuz a sweet thought to me.

Not that I really _wanted_ the world to come to a end that day. No,
I kinder wanted to live along for some time, for several reasons: My
pardner, the babe, the children, etc.; and then I kinder like to live
for the _sake_ of livin’. I enjoy it.

But I can say, and say with truth, and solemnity, that the idee didn’t
scare me none. And as my companion looked down in my face as the time
approached, I could see the same thoughts that wuz writ in my eyes
a-shinin’ in his’n.

Wall, as the pinter approached the hour, the excitement grew nearly, if
not quite rampant. The believers threw their white robes on over their
dresses and coats, and as the pinter slowly moved round from half-past
three to quarter to 4--and so on--they shouted, they sung, they prayed,
they shook each other’s hands--they wuz fairly crazed with excitement
and fervor, which they called religion--for they wuz in earnest, nobody
could dispute that.

Joe and Miss Pool kinder hung together all this time--though I ketched
him givin’ several wistful looks at Jenette, as much as to say, “Oh, how
I hate to leave you, Jenette!”

But Miss Pool would roust him up agin, and he would shout and sing with
the frienziedest and most zealousest of ‘em.

Mother Charnick stood with her bag in her hand, and the other hand on
the puckerin’ string. I don’t say what she had in the bag, but I do say
this, that she had it fixed so’s she could have ondone it in a secont’s
time. And her eyes wuz intent on the heavens overhead. But they kep
calm and serene and cloudless, nothin’ to be seen there--no sign, no
change--and Ma Charnick kep still and didn’t draw the puckerin’ string.

But oh, how excitement reined and grew rampant around that school-house!
Miss Pool and Joe seemin’ to outdo all the rest (she always did try to),
till at last, jest as the pinter swung round to the very minute, Joe,
more than half by the side of himself, with the excitement he had been
in for a week, and bein’ urged onto it by Miss Pool, as he sez to this
day, he jumped up onto the tall stump he had been a standin’ by, and
stood there in his long white robe, lookin’ like a spook, if anybody had
been calm enough to notice it, and he sung out in a clear voice--his
voice always did have a good honest ring to it:

  Farewell my friends,
  Farewell my foes;
  Up to Heaven
  Joe Charnick goes.

And jest as the clock struck, and they all shouted and screamed, he
waved his arms, with their two great white wings a-flutterin’, and
sprung upwards, expectin’ the hull world, livin’ and dead, would foller
him--and go right up into the heavens.

And Trueman’s wife bein’ right by the stump, waved her wings and jumped
too--jest the same direction es he jumped. But she only stood on a camp
chair, and when she fell, she didn’t crack no bones, it only jarred her
dretfully, and hurt her across the small of her back, to that extent
that I kep bread and milk poultices on day and night for three weeks,
and lobelia and catnip, half and half; she a-arguin’ at me every single
poultice I put on that it wuzn’t her way of makin’ poultices, nor her
way of applyin’ of ‘em.

[Illustration: “FAREWELL MY FRIENDS, FAREWELL MY FOES.”]

I told her I didn’t know of any other way of applyin’ ‘em to her back,
only to put ‘em on it.  But she insisted to the last that I didn’t apply
‘em right, and I didn’t crumble the bread into the milk right, and the
lobelia wuzn’t picked right, nor the catnip.

Not one word did she ever speak about the end of the world--not a
word--but a-naggin’ about everything else.

Wall, I healed her after a time, and glad enough wuz I to see her
healed, and started off.

But Joe Charnick suffered worse and longer. He broke his limb in two
places and cracked his rib. The bones of his arm wuz a good while
a-healin’, and before they wuz healed he was wounded in a new place.

He jest fell over head and ears in love with Jenette Finster. For bein’
shet up to home with his mother and her (his mother wouldn’t hear to
Jenette leavin’ her for a minute) he jest seemed to come to a full
realizin’ sense of her sweet natur’ and bright, obleegin’ ways; and his
old affection for her bloomed out into the deepest and most idolatrous
love--Joe never could be megum.

Jenette, and good enough for him, held him off for quite a spell--but
when he got cold and relapsted, and they thought he wuz goin’ to die,
then she owned up to him that she worshipped him--and always had.

And from that day he gained. Mother Charnick wuz tickled most to death
at the idea of havin’ Jenette for her own girl--she thinks her eyes on
her, and so does Jenette of her. So it wuz agreeable as anything ever
wuz all around, if not agreeabler.

Jest as quick as she got well enough to walk, and before he got out of
his bed, Trueman’s wife walked over to see Joe. And Joe’s mother hatin’
her so, wouldn’t let her step her foot into the house. And Joe wuz glad
on’t, so they say.

Mother Charnick wuz out on the stoop in front of the house, when
Trueman’s wife got there, and told her that they had to keep the house
still; that is, they say so, I don’t know for certain, but they say that
Ma Charnick offered to take Trueman’s wife out to see her chickens, the
ones she had brought up by hand, and Trueman’s wife wantin’ to please
her, so’s to get in, consented. And Miss Charnick showed her the hull 14
of ‘em, all fat and flourishing--they wuz well took care of. And Miss
Charnick looked down on ‘em fondly, and sez:

“I lay out to have a good chicken pie the day that Joe and Jenette are
married.”

[Illustration: “I LAY OUT TO HAVE A GOOD CHICKEN PIE THE DAY THAT JOE
AND JENETTE ARE MARRIED.”]

“Married!” sez Trueman’s wife, in faint and horrified axcents. “Yes,
they are goin’ to be married jest as soon as my son gets well enough.
Jenette is fixin’ a new dress for me to wear to the weddin’--with a
bask,” sez she with emphasis. And es she said it, they say she stooped
down and gathered some sprigs of thoroughwert, a-mentionin’ how much
store she set by it for sickness.

But if she did, Trueman’s wife didn’t sense it, she wuz dumbfoundered
and sot back by the news. And she left my home and board the week before
the weddin’.

They had been married about a year, when Jenette wuz here
a-visitin’--and she asked me in confidence (and it _must_ be kep, it
stands lo reason it must), “if I s’posed that book muslin robe would
make two little dresses?”

And I told her, “Good land! yes, three on ‘em,” and it did.

She dresses the child beautiful, and I don’t know whether she would
want the neighbors to know jest what and when and where she gets the
materials--

It looks some like her and some like Joe--and they both think their eyes
on it--but old Miss Charnick worships it--Wall, though es I said (and I
have eppisoded to a extent that is almost onprecidented and onheard on).

Though Josiah Allen made a excuse of borrowin’ a plow (a _plow_, that
time of night) to get away from my arguments on the Conference, and
Submit’s kinder skairt face, and so forth, and so on--

He resumed the conversation the next mornin’ with more energy than ever.
(He never said nuthin’ about the plow, and I never see no sign on it,
and don’t believe he got it, or wanted it.)

He resumed the subject, and kep on a-resumin’ of it from day to day and
from hour to hour.

He would nearly exhaust the subject at home, and then he would tackle
the wimmen on it at the Methodist Meetin’ House, while we Methodist
wimmen wuz to work.

After leavin’ me to the meetin’ house, Josiah would go on to the
post-office for his daily _World_, and then he would stop on his way
back to give us female wimmen the latest news from the Conference, and
give us his idees on’t.

[Illustration: “HE NEVER HAD TIME TO HELP.”]

And sometimes he would fairly harrow us to the  very bone, with his
dretful imaginins and fears that wimmen would be allowed to overdo
herself, and ruin her health, and strain her mind, by bein’ permitted to
set!

Why Submit Tewksbury, and some of the other weaker sisters, would look
fairly wild-eyed for some time after he would go.

He never could stay long. Sometimes we would beset him to stay and do
some little job for us, to help us along with our work, such as liftin’
somethin’ or movin’ some bench, or the pulpit, or somethin’.

But he never had the time; he always had to hasten home to get to work.
He wuz in a great hurry with his spring’s work, and full of care about
that buzz saw mill.

And that wuz how it wuz with every man in the meetin’ house that wuz
able to work any. They wuz all in a hurry with their spring’s work, and
their buzz saws, and their inventions, and their agencys, etc., etc.,
etc.

And that wuz the reason why we wimmen wuz havin’ such a hard job on the
meetin’ house.



CHAPTER XVII.


You see the way on’t wuz: we had to do sumthin’ to raise the minister’s
salary, which wuz most half a year behindhand, to say nothin’ of the
ensuin’ year a-comin’. And as I have hinted at before but hain’t gi’n
petickulers, the men in the meetin’ house had all gi’n out, and said
they had gi’n every cent they could, and they couldn’t and they wouldn’t
do any more, any way.

As I have said more formally, there wuz a hardness arozen amongst the
male brethern.

Deacon Peedick thought he had gi’n more than his part in proportion, and
come right out plain and said so.

And Deacon Bobbet said “he wuzn’t the man to stand it to be told right
to his face that he hadn’t done his share,” and he said “he wuzn’t the
man either, to be hinted at from the pulpit about things.” I don’t
believe he wuz hinted at, and Sister Bobbet don’t And she felt like
death to have him so riz up in his mind, and act so. I know what the
tex’ wuz; it wuz these words:

“The Lord loveth a cheerful giver.”

The minister didn’t mean nothin’ only pure gospel, when he preached
about it. But it proved to be a tight-breasted, close-fittin’ coat
to several of the male brothers, and it fitted ‘em so well it fairly
pinched ‘em.

But there it wuz, Deacon Bobbet wouldn’t gi’n a cent towards raisin’ the
money. And there wuz them that said, and stuck to it, that he said “he
wouldn’t give a _darn_ cent.”

But I don’t know as that is so. I wouldn’t want to be the one that said
that he had demeaned himself to that extent.

Wall, he wouldn’t give a cent, and Peedick wouldn’t give, and Deacon
Henzy and Deacon Sypher wouldn’t. They said that there wuz certain
members of the meetin’ house that had said to certain people suthin’
slightin’ about buzz saws.

I myself thought then, and think still, that the subject of buzz saws
had a great deal to do in makin’ ‘em act so riz up and excited. I
believe the subject rasped ‘em, and made ‘em nervous. But when these
various hardnesses aroze amongst some of the brethern, the rest of the
men kinder joined in with ‘em, some on one side, and some on the other,
and they all baulked right out of the harness. (Allegory.) And there the
minister wuz, good old creeter, jest a-sufferin’ for the necessities of
life, and most half a year’s salery due.

I tell you it looked dark. The men all said they couldn’t see no way out
of the trouble, and some of the wimmen felt about so. And old Miss Henn,
one of our most able sisters, she had gi’n out, she wuz as mad as her
own sirname about how her Metilda had been used.

The meetin’ house had just hauled her up for levity. And I thought then,
and think now, that the meetin’ house wuz too hard on Metilda Henn.

She did titter right out in protracted meetin’, Sister Henn don’t deny
it, and she felt dretful bad about it, and so did I. But Metilda said,
and stuck to it, that she couldn’t have helped laughin’ if it had been
to save her life. And though I realized the awfulness of it, still, when
some of the brethern wuz goin’ on dretful about it, I sez to ‘em:

“The Bible sez there is a time to laugh, and I don’t know when that is,
unless it is when you can’t help it.”

What she wuz a-laughin’ at wuz this:

There wuz a widder woman by the name of Nancy Lum that always come to
evenin’ meetin’s.

She wuz very tall and humbly, and she had been on the look out (so it
wuz s’pozed) for a 3d husband for some time.

She had always made a practice of saying one thing over and over to all
the protracted and Conference meetin’s, and she would always bust out
a-cryin’ before she got it all out.

She always said “she wanted to be found always at the foot of the
Cross.”

She would always begin this remark dretful kinder loud and hysterical,
and then would dwindle down kinder low at the end on’t, and bustin’ out
into tears somewhere through it from first to last.

But this evenin’ suthin’ had occurred to make her more hysterical and
melted down than usial. Some say it wuz because Deacon Henshaw wuz
present for the first time after his wive’s death.

But any way, she riz up lookin’ awful tall and humbly--she was most a
head taller than any man there--and she sez out loud and strong:

“I want to be found--”

And then she busted right out a-cryin’ hard. And she sobbed for some
time. And then she begun agin,

“I want to be found--”

And then she busted out agin.

And so it went on for some time--she a-tellin’ out ever and anon loud
and firm, “that she wanted to be found--” and then bustin’ into tears.

Till finally Deacon Henshaw (some mistrust that he is on the point of
gettin’ after her, and he always leads the singin’ any way) he struck
right out onto the him--

  “Oh, that will be joyful!”

And Sister Lum sot down.

Wall, that wuz what made Metilda Henn titter. And that was what made me
bring forward that verse of scripter. That the Bible said “‘there wuz a
time to laugh,’ and I didn’t know when it wuz unless it wuz when you
couldn’t help it--”

But I didn’t say it to uphold Metilda--no, indeed. I only said it
because they wuz so bitter on her, and laid the rules of the meetin’
house down on her so heavy.

But Josiah said, “What would become of the meetin’ house if it didn’t
punish its unruly members?”

And I sez to Josiah, “Do you remember the case of Deacon Widrig over in
Loontown. He wuz rich and influential, and when he wuz complained of,
and the meetin’ house sot on him, they sot light, and you know it,
Josiah Allen. And he was kep in the church, the meen old creeter. And
Miss Henn is a widder and poor.”

“Yes,” sez Josiah, calmly, “she hain’t been able to help the meetin’
house much, and Brother Widrig contributes largely.”

Sez I, in a fearful meanin’ axent, “I hearn he did at the time he wuz
up--I hearn he contributed _lots_ to the male brethren who was a-judgin’
him--but,” sez I, “do you spoze, Josiah Allen, that if wimmen wuz
allowed their way in the matter, that that man would be allowed to stay
in the meetin’ house, and keep on a-makin’ and a-sellin’ the poisen that
is sendin’ men to ruin all round him--

“Makin’ his hard cider by the barell and hogset and fixin’ it some way
so it will make a far worse drunk than whiskey, and then supplyin’ every
low saloon fur and near with it, and peddlin’ it out to every man and
boy that wants it.

“And boys think they can drink cider without doin’ any harm--so he jest
entices ‘em down into the road to ruin--doin’ as much agin harm as a
whiskey seller.

“And mothers have to set still and see it go on. It is men that are
always appinted to deal with sinners, male or female. Men are judged by
their peers, but wimmen never are.

“I wonder if that is just? I wonder how Deacon Widrig would have liked
it to have had Miss Henn set on him? He wuz dretful excited, so I hearn,
about Metilda’s case--thought it wuz highly incumbient on the meetin’
house to have her made a example of, so’s to try to abolish such wicked
doin’s as snickerin’ out in meetin’.

[Illustration: “SUPPLYIN’ EVERY LOW SALOON FUR AND NEAR.”]

“I wonder how he would have liked it to have had Charley Lanfear’s
mother set on him? She is a Sister  in the meetin’ house and Charley is
a ruined boy--and Deacon Widrig is jest as much the cause of his ruin--
jest as guilty of murderin’ all that wuz sweet and lovely in him es if
he had fed arsenic to him with a teaspoon.”

Sez I, “In that very meetin’ house to Loontown, there are mothers who
have to set and take the bread and wine tokens of the blood and body of
their crucified Redeemer from a man’s hands that they know are red
with the blood of their own sons. Fur redder than human blood and
deeper-stained with the ruin of their immortal souls.

“What thoughts does these mothers keep on a-thinkin’ as they set there
and see a man guilty of worse than murder set up as a example to other
young souls? What thoughts do they keep on a-thinkin’ of the young
hearts that wuz pure before this man laid holt of ‘em. Young eyes that
wuz true and tender till this man made ‘em look on his accursed drink.
Young lips that smiled on their mothers till he gin ‘em that that
changed the smiles to curses?

“Would a delegation of wimmen keep such a man in the meetin’ house if he
paved the hull floor with fine gold? No, you know they wouldn’t. Let a
jury of mothers set on such a man, and see if he could get up agin very
easy.

“They are the ones who have suffered by him, who have agonized, who went
down into deeper than the Valley of Death led by his hand. They went
down into that depth where they lose their boy. Lose him eternally.

“Death, jest death, would give ‘em a chance to meet their child again.
But what hope does a mother have when down in the darkness that has
no mornin’, her boy tears his hand from her weak grasp and plunges
downward?

“How does such a mother feel as she sets there in a still meetin’ house,
and the man who has done all this passes her the emblems of a deathless
love, a divine purity?”

Josiah sat demute and, didn’t say nuthin’, and I went on, for I wuz very
roze up in my mind, and by the side of myself with emotions.

And sez I, “Take the case of Simeon Lathers. Why wuz it that Sister
Irene Filkins wuz turned out of the meetin’ house and the man who wuz
the first cause of her goin’ astray kep in--the handsome,
smooth-faced hypocrite?--it wuz because he wuz rich as a Jew, and jest
plastered over the consciences of them that tried him with his fine
speeches and his money.”

[Illustration: “JOSIAH LOOKED UP AND SEZ, ‘HOW A STEEPLE WOULD LOOK
A-PINTIN’ DOWN’”]

“Fixed over the meetin’ house there in Zoar, built a new steeple, a
towerin’ one. If wimmen had had their way, that steeple would have
pinted the other way.”

Josiah looked up from Ayers’ Almanac, which he wuz calmly perusin’, and
sez he,

“How a steeple would look a-pintin’ down!”



CHAPTER XVIII.


Josiah’s face wuz smooth and placid, he hadn’t took a mite of sense of
what I had been a-sayin’, and I knew it. Men don’t. They know at the
most it is only _talk_, wimmen hain’t got it in their power to _do_
anything. And I s’pose they reason on it in this way--a little wind
storm is soon over, it relieves old Natur and don’t hurt anything.

Yes, my pardner’s face wuz as calm as the figger on the outside of the
almanac a-holdin’ the bottle, and his axent wuz mildly wonderin’ and
gently sarcestickle.

“How a steeple would look a-pintin’ down! That is a true woman’s idee.”

[Illustration: SISTER FILKINS.]

Sez I, “I would have it a-pintin’ down towards the depths of darkness
that wuz in that man’s heart that roze it up, and the infamy of the deed
that kep him in the meetin’ house and turned his victim out of it.”

“I d’no as she wuz his victim,” sez Josiah.

Sez I, “Every one knows that in the first place Simeon Lathers wuz the
man that led her astray.”

“It wuzn’t proved,” sez Josiah, a-turnin’ the almanac over and lookin’
at the advertisement on the back side on’t.

“And why wuzn’t it proved?” sez I, “because he held a big piece of gold
against the mouths of the witnesses.”

“I didn’t see any in front of my mouth,” sez Josiah, lookin’ ‘shamed but
some composed.

“And you know what the story wuz,” sez he, “accordin’ to that, he did it
all to try her faith.”

I wouldn’t encourage Josiah by even smilin’ at his words, though I knew
well what the story wuz he referred to.

It wuz at a Conference meetin’, when Simeon Lathers wuz jest a-beginnin’
to take notice of how pretty Irene Filkins wuz.

She had gone forward to the anxious seat, with some other young females,
their minds bein’ wrought on, so it wuz spozed, by Deacon Lathers’s
eloquent exhortations, and urgin’s to ‘em to come forward and be saved.

And they had gone up onto the anxious seat a-sheddin’ tears, and they
all knelt down there, and Deacon Lathers he went right up and knelt down
right by Sister Irene Filkins, and them that wuz there say, that right
while he wuz a-prayin’ loud and strong for ‘em all, and her specially,
he put his arm round her and acted in such a way that she resented it
bitterly.

She wuz a good, virtuous girl then, any way.

And she resented his overtoors in such a indignant and decided way that
it drawed the attention of a hull lot of brothers and sisters towards
‘em.

And Deacon Lathers got right up from his knees and sez, “Bretheren and
sisters, let us sing these lines:

  “He did it all to try her faith.”

I remembered this story, but I wuzn’t goin’ to encourage Josiah Allen
by lettin’ my attention be drawed off by any anectotes--nor I didn’t
smile--oh, no I But I went right on with a hull lot of burnin’
indignatin in my axents, and sez I, “Josiah Allen, can you look me in
the face and say that it wuzn’t money and bad men’s influence that keep
such men as Deacon Widrig and Simeon Lathers in the meetin’ house?” Sez
I, “If they wuz poor men would they have been kep’, or if it wuzn’t for
the influence of men that like hard drink?”

“Wall, as it were,” sez Josiah, “I--that is--wall, it is a-gettin’
bed-time, Samantha.”

And he wound up the clock and went to bed.

And I set there, all rousted up in my mind, for more’n a hour--and I
dropped more’n seven stitches in Josiah’s heel, and didn’t care if I
did.

But I have episoded fearfully, and to resoom and go on.

Miss Henn wuz mad, and she wuz one of our most enterprizen’ sisters, and
we felt that she wuz a great loss.

Things looked dretful dark. And Sister Bobbet, who is very tender
hearted, shed tears several times a-talkin’ about the hard times that
had come onto our meetin’ house, and how Zion wuz a-languishin’, etc.,
etc.

And I told Sister Bobbet in confidence, and also in public, that it wuz
time to talk about Zion’s languishin’ when we had done all we could to
help her up. And I didn’t believe Zion would languish so much if she had
a little help gin her when she needed it.

And Miss Bobbet said “she felt jest so about it, but she couldn’t help
bein’ cast down.” And so most all of the sisters said. Submit Tewksbury
wept, and shed tears time and agin, a-talkin’ about it, and so several
of ‘em did. But I sez to ‘em--

“Good land!” sez I. “We have seen jest as hard times in the Methodist
meetin’ house before, time and agin, and we wimmen have always laid holt
and worked, and laid plans, and worked, and worked, and with the Lord’s
help have sailed the old ship Zion through the dark waters into safety,
and we can do it agin.”

Though what we wuz to do we knew not, and the few male men who didn’t
jine in the hardness, said they couldn’t see no way out of it, but what
the minister would have to go, and the meetin’ house be shet up for a
spell.

But we female wimmen felt that we could not have it so any way. And we
jined together, and met in each other’s housen (not publickly, oh no! we
knew our places too well as Methodist Sisters).

We didn’t make no move in public, but we kinder met round to each
other’s housen, sort o’ private like, and talked, and talked, and
prayed--we all knew that wuzn’t aginst the church rules, so we jest
rastled in prayer, for help to pay our honest debts, and keep the
Methodist meetin’ house from disgrace, for the men wuz that worked up
and madded, that they didn’t seem to care whether the meetin’ house come
to nothin’ or not.

Wall, after settin’ day after day (not public settin’, oh, no! we knew
our places too well, and wouldn’t be ketched a-settin’ public till we
had a right to).

After settin’ and talkin’ it over back and forth, we concluded the very
best thing we could do wuz to give a big fair and try to sell things
enough to raise some money.

It wuz a fearful tuff job we had took onto ourselves, for we had got to
make all the things to sell out of what we could get holt of, for, of
course, our husbands all kep the money purses in their own hands, as
the way of male pardners is. But we laid out to beset ‘em when they wuz
cleverer than common (owin’ to extra good vittles) and get enough money
out of ‘em to buy the materials to work with, bedquilts (crazy, and
otherwise), embroidered towels, shawl straps, knit socks and suspenders,
rugs, chair covers, lap robes, etc., etc., etc.

It wuz a tremendus hard undertakin’ we had took onto ourselves, with all
our spring’s work on hand, and not one of us Sisters kep a hired girl
at the time, and we had to do our own house cleanin’, paintin’ floors,
makin’ soap, spring sewin’, etc., besides our common housework.

But the very worst on’t wuz the meetin’ house wuz in such a shape that
we couldn’t do a thing till that wuz fixed.

The men had undertook to fix over the meetin’ house jest before the
hardness commenced. The men and wimmen both had labored side by side to
fix up the old house a little.

The men had said that in such church work as that wimmen had a perfect
right to help, to stand side by side with the male brothers, and do
half, or more than half, or even _all_ the work. They said it wuzn’t
aginst the Discipline, and all the Bishops wuz in favor of it, and
always had been. They said it wuz right accordin’ to the Articles. But
when it come to the hard and arjuous duties of drawin’ salleries with
‘em, or settin’ up on Conferences with ‘em, why there a line had to
be drawed, wimmen must not be permitted to strain herself in no such
ways--nor resk the tender delicacy of her nature, by settin’ in a
meetin’ house as a delegate by the side of a man once a year. It wuz too
resky. But we could lay holt and work with ‘em in public, or in private,
which we felt wuz indeed a privelege, for the interests of the Methodist
meetin’ house wuz dear to our hearts, and so wuz our pardners’
approvals--and they wuz all on ‘em unanimus on this pint--we could
_work_ all we wanted to.

So we had laid holt and worked right along with the men from day to day,
with their full and free consents, and a little help from ‘em, till we
had got the work partly done. We had got the little Sabbath-school room
painted and papered, and the cushions of the main room new covered, and
we had engaged to have it frescoed, but the frescoer had turned out to
be a perfect fraud, and, of all the lookin’ things, that meetin’ house
wuz about the worst. The plaster, or whatever it wuz he had put on, had
to be all scraped off before it could be papered, the paper wuz bought,
and the scrapin’ had begun.

[Illustration: “APPEARIN’ IN PUBLIC.”]

The young male and female church members had give a public concert
together, and raised enough money to get the paper--it wuz very nice,
and fifty cents a roll (double roll).  These young females appearin’ in
public for this purpose wuz very agreeable to the hull meetin’ house,
and wuz right accordin’ to the rules of the Methodist Meetin’ House, for
I remember I asked about it when the question first come up about
sendin’ female delegates to the Conference, and all the male members of
our meetin’ house wuz so horrified at the idee.

I sez, “I’ll bet there wouldn’t one of the delegates yell half so loud
es she that wuz Mahala Gowdey at the concert. Her voice is a sulferino
of the very keenest edge and highest tone, and she puts in sights and
sights of quavers.”

But they all said that wuz a _very_ different thing.

And sez I, “How different? She wuz a yellin’ in public for the good
of the Methodist Meetin’ House (it wuz her voice that drawed the big
congregatin, we all know). And them wimmen delegates would only have to
‘yea’ and ‘nay’ in a still small voice for the good of the same. I can’t
see why it would be so much more indelicate and unbecomin’ in them”--and
sez I, “they would have bonnets and shawls on, and she that wuz Mahala
had on a low neck and short sleeves.” But they wouldn’t yield, and I
wouldn’t nuther.

But I am a eppisodin fearful, and to resoom. Wall, as I said, the
scrapin’ had begun. One side of the room wuz partly cleaned so the paper
could go on, and then the fuss come up, and there it wuz, as you may
say, neither hay nor grass, neither frescoed nor papered nor nuthin’.
And of all the lookin’ sights it wuz.

Wall, of course, if we had a fair in that meetin’ house, we couldn’t
have it in such a lookin’ place to disgrace us in the eyes of Baptists
and ‘Piscopals.

No, that meetin’ house had got to be scraped, and we wimmen had got to
do the scrapin’ with case knives.

It wuz a hard job. I couldn’t help thinkin’ quite a number of thoughts
as I stood on a barell with a board acrost it, afraid as death of
fallin’ and a workin’ for dear life, and the other female sisters a
standin’ round on similar barells, all a-workin’ fur beyond their
strengths, and all afraid of fallin’, and we all a-knowin’ what we had
got ahead on us a paperin’ and a gettin’ up the fair.



CHAPTER XIX.


Couldn’t help a-methinkin’ to myself several times. It duz seem to me
that there hain’t a question a-comin’ up before that Conference that
is harder to tackle than this plasterin’ and the conundrum that is up
before us Jonesville wimmen how to raise 300 dollars out of nuthin’, and
to make peace in a meetin’ house where anarky is now rainin’ down.

But I only thought these thoughts to myself, fur I knew every women
there wuz peacible and law abidin’ and there wuzn’t one of ‘em but
what would ruther fall offen her barell then go agin the rules of the
Methodist Meetin’ House.

Yes, I tried to curb down my rebellous thoughts, and did, pretty much
all the time. And good land! we worked so hard that we hadn’t time
to tackle very curius and peculier thoughts, them that wuz dretful
strainin’ and wearin’ on the mind. Not of our own accord we didn’t, fur
we had to jest nip in and work the hull durin’ time.

[Illustration: “EVERY NIGHT JOSIAH WOULD TACKLE ME ON IT.”]

And then we all knew how deathly opposed our pardners wuz to our takin’
any public part in meetin’ house matters or mountin’ rostrums, and that
thought quelled us down a sight.

Of course when these subjects wuz brung up before us, and turned round
and round in front of our eyes, why we had to look at ‘em and be rousted
up by ‘em more or less. It was Nater.

And Josiah not havin’ anything to do evenin’s only to set and look at
the ceilin’. Every single night when I would go home from the meetin’
house, Josiah would tackle me on it, on the danger of allowin’ wimmen
to ventur out of her spear in Meetin’ House matters, and specially the
Conference.

It begin to set in New York the very day we tackled the meetin’ in
Jonesville with a extra grip.

So’s I can truly say, the Meetin’ House wuz on me day and night. For
workin’ on it es I did, all day long, and Josiah a-talkin’ abut it till
bed time, and I a-dreamin’ abut it a sight, that, and the Conference.

Truly, if I couldn’t set on the Conference, the Conference sot on me,
from mornin’ till night, and from night till mornin’.

I spoze it wuz Josiah’s skairful talk that brung it onto me, it wuz
brung on nite mairs mostly, in the nite time.

He would talk _very_ skairful, and what he called deep, and repeat pages
of Casper Keeler’s arguments, and they would appear to me (drawed also
by nite mairs) every page on ‘em lookin’ fairly lurid.

I suffered.

Josiah would set with the _World_ and other papers in his hand,
a-perusin’ of ‘em, while I would be a-washin’ up my dishes, and the very
minute I would get ‘em done and my sleeves rolled down, he would tackle
me, and often he wouldn’t wait for me to get my work done up, or even
supper got, but would begin on me as I filled up my tea kettle, and keep
up a stiddy drizzle of argument till bed time, and as I say, when he
left off, the nite mairs would begin.

I suffered beyond tellin’ almost.

The secont night of my arjuous labors on the meetin’ house, he began
wild and eloquent about wimmen bein’ on Conferences, and mountin’
rostrums. And sez he, “That is suthin’ that we Methodist men can’t
stand.”

[Illustration: “IS ROSTRUMS MUCH HIGHER THAN THEM BARELLS TO STAND ON?”]

And I, havin’ stood up on a barell all day a-scrapin’ the ceilin’, and
not bein’ recuperated yet from the skairtness and dizziness of my day’s
work, I sez to him:

“Is rostrums much higher than them barells we have to stand on to the
meetin’ house?”

And Josiah said, “it wuz suthin’ altogether different.” And he assured
me agin,

“That in any modest, unpretendin’ way the Methodist Church wuz willin’
to accept wimmen’s work. It wuzn’t aginst the Discipline. And that is
why,” sez he, “that wimmen have all through the ages been allowed to do
most all the hard work in the church--such as raisin’ money for church
work--earnin’ money in all sorts of ways to carry on the different kinds
of charity work connected with it--teachin’ the children, nursin’ the
sick, carryin’ on hospital work, etc., etc. But,” sez he, “this is
fur, fur different from gettin’ up on a rostrum, or tryin’ to set on a
Conference. Why,” sez he, in a haughty tone, “I should think they’d know
without havin’ to be told that laymen don’t mean women.”

Sez I, “Them very laymen that are tryin’ to keep wimmen out of the
Conference wouldn’t have got in themselves if it hadn’t been for
wimmen’s votes. If they can legally vote for men to get in why can’t men
vote for them?”

“That is the pint,” sez Josiah, “that is the very pint I have been
tryin’ to explain to you. Wimmen can help men to office, but men can’t
help wimmen; that is law, that is statesmanship. I have been a-tryin’ to
explain it to you that the word laymen _always_ means woman when she can
help men in any way, but _not_ when he can help her, or in any other
sense.”

Sez I, “It seemed to mean wimmen when Metilda Henn wuz turned out of the
meetin’ house.”

“Oh, yes,” sez Josiah in a reasonin’ tone, “the word laymen always means
wimmen when it is used in a punishin’ and condemnatory sense, or in the
case of work and so fourth, but when it comes to settin’ up in high
places, or drawin’ sallerys, or anything else difficult, it alweys means
men.”

Sez I, in a very dry axent, “Then the word man, when it is used in
church matters, always means wimmen, so fur as scrubbin’ is concerned,
and drowdgin’ round?”

“Yes,” sez Josiah haughtily, “And it always means men in the higher and
more difficult matters of decidin’ questions, drawin’ sallerys, settin’
on Conferences, etc. It has long been settled to be so,” sez he.

“Who settled it?” sez I.

“Why the men, of course,” sez he. “The men have always made the rules
of the churches, and translated the Bibles, and everything else that is
difficult,” sez he. Sez I, in fearful dry axents, almost husky ones, “It
seems to take quite a knack to know jest when the word laymen means men
and when it means wimmen.”

“That is so,” sez Josiah. “It takes a man’s mind to grapple with it;
wimmen’s minds are too weak to tackle it It is jest as it is with that
word ‘men’ in the Declaration of Independence. Now that word ‘men’, in
that Declaration, means men some of the time, and some of the time men
and wimmen both. It means both sexes when it relates to punishment,
taxin’ property, obeyin’ the laws strictly, etc., etc., and then it goes
right on the very next minute and means men only, as to wit, namely,
votin’, takin’ charge of public matters, makin’ laws, etc.

“I tell you it takes deep minds to foller on and see jest to a hair
where the division is made. It takes statesmanship.

“Now take that claws, ‘All men are born free and equal.’

“Now half of that means men, and the other half men and wimmen. Now to
understand them words perfect you have got to divide the tex. ‘Men are
born.’ That means men and wimmen both--men and wimmen are both born,
nobody can dispute that. Then comes the next claws, ‘Free and equal.’
Now that means men only--anybody with one eye can see that.

“Then the claws, ‘True government consists.’ That means men and wimmen
both--consists--of course the government consists of men and wimmen,
‘twould be a fool who would dispute that. ‘In the consent of the
governed.’ That means men alone. Do you see, Samantha?” sez he.

I kep’ my eye fixed on the tea kettle, fer I stood with my tea-pot in
hand waitin’ for it to bile--“I see a great deal, Josiah Allen.”

[Illustration: CHURCH WORK.]

“Wall,” sez he, “I am glad on’t. Now to sum it up,” sez he, with some
the mean of a preacher--or, ruther, a exhauster--“to sum the matter all
up, the  words ‘bretheren,’ ‘laymen,’ etc., always means wimmen so fur
as this: punishment for all offenses, strict obedience to the rules of
the church, work of any kind and all kinds, raisin’ money, givin’ money
all that is possible, teachin’ in the Sabbath school, gettin’ up
missionary and charitable societies, carryin’ on the same with no help
from the male sect leavin’ that sect free to look after their half of
the meanin’ of the word--sallerys, office, makin’ the laws that bind
both of the sexes, rulin’ things generally, translatin’ Bibles to suit
their own idees, preachin’ at ‘em, etc., etc. Do you see, Samantha?” sez
he, proudly and loftily.

“Yes,” sez I, as I filled up my tea-pot, for the water had at last
biled. “Yes, I see.”

And I spoze he thought he had convinced me, for he acted high headeder
and haughtier for as much as an hour and a half. And I didn’t say
anything to break it up, for I see he had stated it jest as he and all
his sect looked at it, and good land! I couldn’t convince the hull male
sect if I tried--clergymen, statesmen and all--so I didn’t try, and I
wuz truly beat out with my day’s work, and I didn’t drop more than one
idee more. I simply dropped this remark es I poured out his tea and put
some good cream into it--I merely sez:

“There is three times es many wimmen in the meetin’ house es there is
men.”

“Yes,” sez he, “that is one of the pints I have been explainin’ to you,”
 and then he went on agin real high headed, and skairt, about the old
ground, of the willingness of the meetin’ house to shelter wimmen in its
folds, and how much they needed gaurdin’ and guidin’, and about their
delicacy of frame, and how unfitted they wuz to tackle anything hard,
and what a grief it wuz to the male sect to see ‘em a-tryin’ to set on
Conferences or mount rostrums, etc., etc.

And I didn’t try to break up his argument, but simply repeated the
question I had put to him--for es I said before, I wuz tired, and
skairt, and giddy yet from my hard labor and my great and hazardus
elevatin’; I had not, es you may say, recovered yet from my
recuperation, and so I sez agin them words--

“Is rostrums much higher than them barells to stand on?” And Josiah said
agin, “it wuz suthin’ entirely different;” he said barells and rostrums
wuz so fur apart that you couldn’t look at both on ‘em in one day
hardly, let alone a minute. And he went on once more with a long
argument full of Bible quotations and everything.

And I wuz too tuckered out to say much more. But I did contend for it to
the last, that I didn’t believe a rostrum would be any more tottlin’ and
skairful a place than the barell I had been a-standin’ on all day, nor
the work I’d do on it any harder than the scrapin’ of the ceilin’ of
that meetin house.

And I don’t believe it would, I stand jest as firm on it to-day as I did
then.



CHAPTER XX.


Wall, we got the scrapin’ done after three hard and arjous days’ works,
and then we preceeded to clean the house. The day we set to clean the
meetin’ house prior and before paperin’, we all met in good season, for
we knew the hardships of the job in front of us, and we all felt that we
wanted to tackle it with our full strengths.

Sister Henzy, wife of Deacon Henzy, got there jest as I did. She wuz in
middlin’ good spirits and a old yeller belzerine dress.

Sister Gowdy had the ganders and newraligy and wore a flannel for ‘em
round her head, but she wuz in workin’ spirits, her will wuz up in arms,
and nerved up her body.

Sister Meechim wuz a-makin’ soap, and so wuz Sister Sypher, and Sister
Mead, and me. But we all felt that soap come after religion, not before.
“Cleanliness _next_ to godliness.”

So we wuz all willin’ to act accordin’ and tackle the old meetin’ house
with a willin’ mind.

Wall, we wuz all engaged in the very heat of the warfare, as you may
say, a-scrubbin’ the floors, and a-scourin’ the benches by the door,
and a-blackin’ the 2 stoves that stood jest inside of the door. We wuz
workin’ jest as hard as wimmen ever worked--and all of the wimmen who
wuzn’t engaged in scourin’ and moppin’ wuz a-settin’ round in the pews
a-workin’ hard on articles for the fair--when all of a suddin the
outside door opened and in come Josiah Allen with 3 of the other men
bretheren.

They had jest got the great news of wimmen bein’ apinted for
Deaconesses, and had come down on the first minute to tell us. She that
wuz Celestine Bobbet wuz the only female present that had heard of it.

Josiah had heard it to the post-office, and he couldn’t wait till noon
to tell me about it, and Deacon Gowdy wuz anxius Miss Gowdy should hear
it as soon es possible. Deacon Sypher wanted his wife to know at once
that if she wuzn’t married she could have become a deaconess under his
derectin’.

And Josiah wanted me to know immegietly that I, too, could have had the
privilege if I had been a more single woman, of becomin’ a deaconess,
and have had the chance of workin’ all my hull life for the meetin’
house, with a man to direct my movements and take charge on me, and tell
me what to do, from day to day and from hour to hour.

And Deacon Henzy was anxious Miss Henzy should get the news as quick as
she could. So they all hastened down to the meetin’ house to tell us.

And we left off our work for a minute to hear ‘em. It wuzn’t nowhere
near time for us to go home.

Josiah had lots of further business to do in Jonesville and so had the
other men. But the news had excited ‘em, and exhilerated ‘em so, that
they had dropped everything, and hastened right down to tell us, and
then they wuz a-goin’ back agin immegietly.

I, myself, took the news coolly, or as cool as I could, with my
temperature up to five or five and a half, owin’ to the hard work and
the heat.

[Illustration: THE LAST NEWS FROM THE CONFERENCE.]

Miss Gowdy also took it pretty calm. She leaned on her mop handle,
partly for rest (for she was tuckered out) and partly out of good
manners, and didn’t say much.

But Miss Sypheris such a admirin’woman, she looked fairly radiant at the
news, and she spoke up to her husband in her enthusiastik warm-hearted
way--

“Why, Deacon Sypher, is it possible that I, too, could become a deacon,
jest like you?”

“No,” sez Deacon Sypher solemnly, “no, Drusilly, not like me. But you
wimmen have got the privelege now, if you are single, of workin’ all
your days at church work under the direction of us men.”

“Then I could work at the Deacon trade under you,” sez she admirin’ly,
“I could work jest like you--pass round the bread and wine and the
contribution box Sundays?”

“Oh, no, Drusilly,” sez he condesendinly, “these hard and arjuous dutys
belong to the male deaconship. That is their own one pertickiler work,
that wimmen can’t infringe upon. Their hull strength is spent in these
duties, wimmen deacons have other fields of labor, such as relievin’
the wants of the sick and sufferin’, sittin’ up nights with small-pox
patients, takin’ care of the sufferin’ poor, etc., etc.”

“But,” sez Miss Sypher (she is so good-hearted, and so awful fond of the
deacon), “wouldn’t it be real sweet, Deacon, if you and I could work
together as deacons, and tend the sick, relieve the sufferers--work for
the good of the church together--go about doin’ good?”

“No, Drusilly,” sez he, “that is wimmen’s work. I would not wish for a
moment to curtail the holy rights of wimmen. I wouldn’t want to stand in
her way, and keep her from doin’ all this modest, un-pretendin’ work,
for which her weaker frame and less hefty brain has fitted her.

“We will let it go on in the same old way. Let wimmen have the privelege
of workin’ hard, jest as she always has. Let her work all the time, day
and night, and let men go on in the same sure old way of superentendin’
her movements, guardin’ her weaker footsteps, and bossin’ her round
generally.”

Deacon Sypher is never happy in his choice of language, and his method
of argiment is such that when he is up on the affirmative of a question,
the negative is delighted, for they know he will bring victery to their
side of the question. Now, he didn’t mean to speak right out about men’s
usual way of bossin’ wimmen round. It was only his unfortunate and
transparent manner of speakin’.

And Deacon Bobbet hastened to cover up the remark by the statement that
“he wuz so highly tickled that wimmen wuzn’t goin’ to be admitted to the
Conference, because it would _weaken_ the Conference.”

“Yes,” sez my Josiah, a-leanin’ up aginst the meetin’ house door, and
talkin’ pretty loud, for Sister Peedick and me had gone to liftin’ round
the big bench by the door, and it wuz fearful heavy, and our minds wuz
excersised as to the best place to put it while we wuz a-cleanin’ the
floor.

“You see,” sez he, “we feel, we men do, we feel that it would be
weakenin’ to the Conference to have wimmen admitted, both on account of
her own lack of strength and also from the fact that every woman you
would admit would keep out a man. And that,” sez he (a-leanin’ back in
a still easier attitude, almust a luxurious one), “that, you see, would
tend naterally to weakenin’ the strength of a church.”

[Illustration: “WALL,” SEZ I, “MOVE ROUND A LITTLE, WON’T YOU, FOR WE
WANT TO SET THE BENCH.”]

“Wall,” sez I, a-pantin’ hard for breath under my burden, “move round a
little, won’t you, for we want to set the bench here while we scrub
under it. And,” sez I, a-stoppin’ a minute and rubbin’ the perspiratin
and sweat offen my face, “Seein’ you men are all here, can’t you lay
holt and help us move out the benches, so we can clean the floor under
‘em? Some of ‘em are very hefty,” sez I, “and all of us Sisters almost
are a-makin’ soap, and we all want to get done here, so we can go home
and bile down; we would dearly love a little help,” sez I.

“I would help,” sez Josiah in a willin’ tone, “I would help in a minute,
if I hadn’t got so much work to do at home.”

And all the other male bretheren said the same thing--they had got to
git to get home to get to work. (Some on ‘em wanted to play checkers,
and I knew it.)

But some on ‘em did have lots of work on their hands, I couldn’t dispute
it.



CHAPTER XXI.


Why, Deacon Henzy, besides all his cares about the buzz saw mill, and
his farm work, had bought a steam threshin’ machine that made him sights
of work. It was a good machine. But it wuz fairly skairful to see it
a-steamin’ and a-blowin’ right along the streets of Jonesville without
the sign of a horse or ox or anything nigh it to draw it. A-puffin’ out
the steam, and a-tearin’ right along, that awful lookin’ that it skairt
she that wuz Celestine Bobbet most into fits.

She lived in a back place where such machines wuz unknown, and she had
come home to her father’s on a visit, and wuz goin’ over to visit some
of his folks that day, over to Loontown.

And she wuz a-travellin’ along peacible, with her father’s old mair, and
a-leanin’ back in the buggy a readin’ a article her father had sent over
by her to Deacon Widrig, a witherin’ article about female Deaconesses,
and the stern necessity of settin’ ‘em apart and sanctifyen’ ‘em to this
one work--deacon work--and how they mustn’t marry, or tackle any other
hard jobs whatsumever, or break off into any other enterprize, only jest
plain deacon work.

It wuz a very flowery article. And she wuz enjoyin’ of it first rate,
and a-thinkin’, for she is a little timid and easily skairt, and the
piece had convinced her--

She wuz jest a-thinkin’ how dretful it would be if sum female deaconess
should ever venter into some other branch of business, and what would
be apt to become of her if she did. She hated to think of what her doom
would most likely be, bein’ tender hearted.

[Illustration: “SHE SEE THIS WILD AND SKAIRFUL MACHINE APPROACHIN’.”]

When lo, and behold! jest as she wuz a-thinkin’ these thoughts, she see
this wild and skairful machine approachin’, and Deacon Henzy a-standin’
up on top of it a-drivin’. He looked wild and excited, bein’ very
tickled to think that he had threshed more with his machine, by twenty
bushels, than Deacon Petengill had with his.  There was a bet upon these
two deacons, so it wuz spozed, and he wuz a-hastenin’ to the next place
where he wuz to be setup, so’s to lose no time, and he was kinder
hollerin’.

And the wind took his gray hair back, and his long side whiskers, and
kinder stood ‘em out, and the skirts of his frock the same.

His mean wuz wild.

And it wuz more than Celestine’s old mair and she herself could bear;
she cramped right round in the road (the mair did) and set sail back to
old Bobbet’ses, and that great concern a-puffin’ and a-steamin’ along
after ‘em.

And by the time that she that wuz Celestine got there she wuz almost in
a fit, and the mair in a perfect lather.

Wall, Celestine didn’t get over it for weeks and weeks, nor the mair
nuther.

And besides this enterprize of Deacon Henzy’s, he had got up a great
invention, a new rat trap, that wuz peculier and uneek in the extreme.

It wuz the result of arjous study on his part, by night and day, for a
long, long time, and it wuz what he called “A Travellin’ Rat Trap.” It
wuz designed to sort o’ chase the rats round and skair ‘em.

[Illustration: DEACON HENZY’S RAT TRAP (LIKE A CIRCUS FOR THE RATS).]

It was spozed he got the idee in the first place from his threshin’
machine. It had to be wound up, and then it would take after ‘em--rats
or mice, or anything--and they do say that it wuz quite a success.

Only it had to move on a smooth floor. It would travel round pretty much
all night; and they say that when it wuz set up in a suller, it would
chase the rats back into their holes, and they would set there and look
out on it, for the biggest heft of the night. It would take up their
minds, and kep ‘em out of vittles and other mischief.

It wuz somethin’ like providin’ a circus for ‘em.

But howsumever, the Deacon wuz a-workin’ at this; he wuzn’t quite
satisfied with its runnin’ gear, and he wuz a-perfectin’ this rat trap
every leisure minute he had outside of his buzz saw and threshin’
machine business, and so he wuz fearful busy.

Deacon Sypher had took the agency for “The Wild West, or The Leaping Cow
Boy of the Plain,” and wuz doin’ well by it.

And Deacon Bobbet had took in a lot of mustangs to keep through the
winter. And he wuz a ridin’ ‘em a good deal, accordin’ to contract, and
tryin’ to tame ‘em some before spring. And this work, with the buzz saw,
took up every minute of his time. For the mustangs throwed him a good
deal, and he had to lay bound up in linements a good deal of the time,
and arneky.

[Illustration: “HE HAD TO LAY BOUND UP IN LINEMENTS A GOOD DEAL OF THE
TIME.”]

So, as I say, it didn’t surprise me a mite to have ‘em say they couldn’t
help us, for I knew jest how these jobs of theirn devoured their time.

And when my Josiah had made his excuse, it wuzn’t any more than I had
looked out for, to hear Deacon Henzy say he had got to git home to ile
his threshin’ machine. One of the cogs wuz out of gear in some way.

He wanted to help us, so it didn’t seem as if he could tear himself
away, but that steam threshin’ machine stood in the way. And then on
his way down to Jonesville that very mornin’ a new idee had come to him
about that travellin’ rat trap, and he wanted to get home jest as quick
as he could, to try it.

And Deacon Bobbet said that three of them mustangs he had took in to
break had got to be rid that day, they wuz a gettin’ so wild he didn’t
hardly dast to go nigh ‘em.

And Deacon Sypher said that he must hasten back, for a man wuz a-comin’
to see him from way up on the State road, to try to get a agency under
him for “The Leaping Cow Boy of the Plain.” And he wanted to show the
“Leaping Cow Boy” to some agents to the tavern in Jonesville on his way
home, and to some wimmen on the old Plank road. Two or three of the
wimmen had gin hopes that they would take the “Leaping Cow Boy.”

And then they said--the hull three of the deacons did--that any minute
them other deacons who wuz goin’ into partnership with ‘em in the buzz
saw business wuz liable to drive down to see ‘em about it.

And some of the other men brethren said their farms and their live stock
demanded the hull of their time--every minute of it.

So we see jest how it wuz, we see these male deacons couldn’t devote any
of their time to the meetin’ house, nor those other brethren nuther.

We see that their time wuz too valuable, and their own business devoured
the hull on it. And we married Sisters, who wuz acestemed to the strange
and mysterius ways of male men, we accepted the situation jest es we
would any other mysterius dispensation, and didn’t say nothin’.

Good land! We wuz used to curius sayin’s and doin’s, every one on us.
Curius as a dog, and curiuser.

But Sister Meechim (onmarried), she is dretful questinin’ and inquirin’
(men don’t like her, they say she prys into subjects she’s no business
to meddle with). She sez to Josiah:

“Why is it, Deacon Allen, that men deacons can carry on all sorts of
business and still be deacons, while wimmen deacons are obleeged to give
up all other business and devote themselves wholly to their work?”

“It is on account of their minds,” sez Josiah. “Men have got stronger
minds than wimmen, that is the reason.”

And Sister Meechim sez agin--

“Why is it that wimmen deacons have to remain onmarried, while men
deacons can marry one wife after another through a long life, that is,
if they are took from ‘em by death or a divorce lawyer?”

“Wall,” sez Josiah, “that, too, is on account of their brains. Their
brains hain’t so hefty es men’s.”

But I jest waded into the argument then. I jest interfered, and sez in a
loud, clear tone,

“Oh, shaw!”

And then I sez further, in the same calm, clear tones, but dry as ever a
dry oven wuz in its dryest times. Sez I,

“If you men can’t help us any about the meetin’ house, you’d better get
out of our way, for we wimmen have got to go to scrubbin’ right where
you are a-standin’.”

“Certainly,” sez Josiah, in a polite axent, “certainly.”

And so the rest of the men said.

And Josiah added to his remarks, as he went down the steps,

“You’d better get home, Samantha, in time to cook a hen, and make some
puddin’, and so forth.”

And I sez, with quite a lot of dignity, “Have I ever failed, Josiah
Allen, to have good dinners for you, and on time too?”

“No,” sez he, “but I thought I would jest stop to remind you of it,
and also to tell you the last news from the Conference, about the
deaconesses.”

And so they trailed down one after another, and left us to our work
in the meetin’ house; but as they disapered round the corner, Sister
Arvilly Lanfear, who hain’t married, and who has got a sharp tongue
(some think that is why, but I don’t; I believe Arvilly has had
chances).

But any way, she sez, as they went down the steps,

“I’ll bet them men wuz a-practisen’ their new parts of men
superentendents, and look on us as a lot of deaconesses.”

[Illustration: “JOSIAH ADDED TO HIS REMARKS.”]

“Wall,” sez Sister Gowdy--she loves to put on Arvilly--“wall, you have
got one qualificatin’, Arvilly!”

“Yes, thank the Lord,” sez she.

And I never asked what she meant, but knew well enough that she spoke of
her single state. But Arvilly has had chances, _I_ think.



CHAPTER XXII.


I got home in time to get a good supper, though mebbe I ortn’t to say
it.

Sure enough, Josiah Allen had killed a hen, and dressed it ready for me
to brile, but it wuz young and tender, and I knew it wouldn’t take long,
so I didn’t care.

Good land! I love to humor him, and he knows it. Casper Keeler come in
jest as I wuz a-gettin’ supper and I thought like as not he would stay
to supper; I laid out to ask him. But I didn’t take no more pains on his
account. No, I do jest as well by Josiah Allen from day to day, as if he
wuz company, or lay out to.

Casper came over on a errent about that buzz saw mill. He wuz in dretful
good spirits, though he looked kinder peaked.

He had jest got home from the city.

It happened dretful curius, but jest at this time Casper Keeler had had
to go to New York on business. He had to sign some papers that nobody
else couldn’t sign.

[Illustration: CASPER KEELER.]

His mother had hearn of a investment there that promised to pay dretful
well, so she had took a lot of stock in it, and it had riz right up
powerful. Why the money had increased fourfold, and more too, and Casper
bein’ jest come of age, had to go and sign suthin’ or other.

Wall, he went round and see lots of sights in New York. His ma’s money
that she had left him made him fairly luxurius as to comfort, and he had
plenty of money to go sight seein’ as much as he wanted to.

He went to all the theatres, and operas, and shows of all kinds, and
museums, and the Brooklyn Bridge, and circuses, and receptions, and et
cetery, et cetery.

He wuz a-tellin’ me how much money he spent while he wuz there, kinder
boastin’ on it; he had went to one of the biggest, highest taverns in
the hull village of New York, where the price wuz higher than the very
highest pinakle on the top of it, fur higher.

And I sez, “Did you go to the Wimmen’s Exchange and the Workin’ Wimmen’s
Association, that wuz held there while you wuz there?”

And he acted real scorfin’.

“Wimmen’s work!” sez he. “No, indeed! I had too much on my hands, and
too much comfort to take in higher circles, than to take in any such
little trifles as wimmen’s work.”

Sez I, “Young man, it is a precious little you would take in in life if
it hadn’t been for wimmen’s work. Who earned and left you the money you
are a-usin’?” sez I, “who educated you and made your life easy before
you?”

And then bein’ fairly drove into a corner, he owned up that his mother
wuz a good woman.

But his nose wuz kinder lifted up the hull of the time he wuz a-sayin’
it, as if he hated to own it up, hated to like a dog.

But he got real happified up and excited afterwards, in talkin’ over
with Josiah what he see to the Conference.’ He stayed to supper; I wuz
a seasonin’ my chicken and mashed potatoes, and garnishin’ ‘em for the
table. I wuz out to one side a little, but I listened with one side of
my brain while the other wuz fixed on pepper, ketchup, parsley, etc.,
etc.

[Illustration: “HE SEEMED TO HAVE A HORROW OF WOMAN A-RAISIN’ OUT OF HER
SPEAR.”]

Sez Casper, “It wuz the proudest, greatest hour of my life,” sez he,
“when I see a nigger delegate git up and give his views on wimmen
keepin’ down in their place. When I see a black nigger stand up there in
that Conference and state so clearly, so logically and so powerfully the
reasons why poor weak wimmen should _not_ be admitted into that sacred
enclosure--

“When I see even a nigger a-standin’ there and a-knowin’ so well what
wimmen’s place wuz, my heart beat with about the proudest emotions I
have ever experienced. Why, he said,” sez Casper, “that if wimmen wuz
allowed to stand up in the Conference, they wouldn’t be satisfied. The
next thing they would want to do would be to preach. It wuz a masterly
argument,” sez Casper.

“It must have been,” sez my Josiah.

“He seemed to have such a borrow of a weak-minded, helpless woman
a-raisin’ herself up out of her lower spear.”

“Well he might,” sez Josiah, “well he might.”

Truly, there are times when women can’t, seeminly, stand no more. This
wuz one on ‘em, and I jest waded right into the argiment. I sez, real
solemn like, a-holdin’ the sprig of parsley some like a septer, only
more sort o’ riz up like and mysteriouser. Yes, I held that green sprig
some as the dove did when it couldn’t find no rest for the soles of its
feet--no foundation under it and it sailed about seekin’ some mount of
truth it could settle down on. Oh how wobblin’ and onsubstantial and
curius I felt hearin’ their talk.

“And,” sez I, “nobody is tickleder than I be to think a colored man has
had the right gin him to stand up in a Conference or anywhere else. I
have probable experienced more emotions in his behalf,” sez I, “deep
and earnest, than any other female, ancient or modern. I have bore his
burdens for him, trembled under his lashes, agonized with him in his
unexampled griefs and wrongs and indignities, and I have rejoiced at the
very depths of my soul at his freedom.

“But,” sez I, “when he uses that freedom to enchain another and as
deservin’ a race, my feelin’s are hurt and my indignations are riz up.

“Yes,” sez I, a-wavin’ that sprig some like a warlike banner, as my
emotions swelled up under my bask waste,

“When that negro stands there a-advocatin’ the slavery of another race,
and a-sayin’ that women ortn’t to say her soul is her own, and wimmen
are too weak and foolish to lift up their right hands, much less preach,
I’d love to ask him where he and his race wuz twenty-five years ago, and
where they would be to-day if it wuzn’t for a woman usin’ her right hand
and her big heart and brain in his behalf, and preachin’ for him all
over the world and in almost every language under the sun. Everybody
says that ‘Uncle Tom’s Cabin’ wuz the searchin’ harrow that loosened the
old, hard ground of slavery so the rich seed of justice could be planted
and bring forth freedom.

“If it hadn’t been for that woman’s preachin’, that negro exhauster
would to-day most likely be a hoin’ cotton with a overseer a-lashin’ him
up to his duties, and his wife and children and himself a-bein’ bought
and sold, and borrowed and lent and mortgaged and drove like so many
animals. And I’d like to have riz right up in that Conference and told
him so.”

“Oh, no,” sez Josiah, lookin’ some meachin’, “no, you wouldn’t.”

“Yes, I would,” sez I. “And I’d ‘ve enjoyed it _richly_” sez I, es I
turned and put my sprig round the edge of the platter.

[Illustration: SAMANTHA EXPRESSES HER VIEWS.]

Casper wuz demute for as much as half a minute, and Josiah Allen looked
machin’ for about the same length of time.

But, good land! how soon they got over it. They wuz as chipper as ever,
a-runnin’ down the idee of women settin’, before they got half through
dinner.

After hard and arjuous work we got the scrapin’ done, and the scrubbin’
done, and then we proceeded to make a move towards puttin’ on the paper.

But the very day before we wuz to put on our first breadth, Sister
Bobbet, our dependence and best paperer, fell down on a apple parin’
and hurt her ankle jint, so’s she couldn’t stand on a barell for more’n
several days.

And we felt dretful cast down about it, for we all felt as if the work
must stop till Sister Bobbet could be present and attend to it.

But, as it turned out, it wuz perfectly providential, so fur as I wuz
concerned, for on goin’ home that night fearfully deprested on account
of Sister Sylvester Bobbet, lo and behold! I found a letter there on my
own mantletry piece that completely turned round my own plans. It come
entirely onexpected to me, and contained the startlin’ intelligence that
my own cousin, on my mother’s own side, had come home to Loontown to
his sister’s, and wuz very sick with nervous prostration, neuralgia,
rheumatism, etc., and expected paralasys every minute, and heart
failure, and such.

[Illustration: “SISTER BOBBET, OUR DEPENDENCE, FELL DOWN ON A APPLE
PARIN’”.]

And his sister, Miss Timson, who wrote the letter, beset me to come over
and see him. She said, Jane Ann did (Miss Timson’ses name is Jane Ann),
and sez she in Post scriptum remark to me, sez she--

“Samantha, I know well your knowledge of sickness and your powers of
takin’ care of the sick. Do come and help me take care of Ralph, for it
seems as if I can’t let him go. Poor boy, he has worked so hard, and now
I wuz in hopes that he wuz goin’ to take some comfort in life, unbeknown
to him. Do come and help him for my sake, and for Rosy’s sake.” Rosy wuz
Ralph’s only child, a pretty girl, but one ruther wild, and needin’ jest
now a father’s strong hand.

Rosy’s mother died when she wuz a babe, and Ralph, who had always
been dretful religius, felt it to be his duty to go and preach to the
savages. So Miss Timson took the baby and Ralph left all his property
with Miss Timson to use for her, and then he girded up his lions, took
his Bible and him book and went out West and tackled the savages.

Tackled ‘em in a perfectly religius way, and done sights of good, sights
and sights. For all he wuz so mild and gentle and religius, he got the
upper hand of them savages in some way, and he brung ‘em into the church
by droves, and they jest worshipped him.

Wall, he worked so hard a-tryin’ to do good and save souls that wuz
lost--a-tryin’ single-handed to overthrow barberus beliefs and habits,
and set up the pure and peaceful doctrines of the Master.

[Illustration: RALPH SMITH ROBINSON.]

He loved and followed, that his health gin out after a time--he felt
weak and mauger.

And jest about this time his sister wrote to him that Rosy havin’ got
in with gay companions, wuz a gettin’ beyond her influence, and she
_needed_ a father’s control and firm hand to guide her right, or else
she would be liable to go to the wrong, and draw lots of others with
her, for she wuz a born leader amongst her mates, jest as her father
wuz--so wouldn’t Ralph come home.

Wall, Ralph come. His sister and girl jest worshipped him, and looked
and longed for his comin’, as only tender-hearted wimmen can love
and worship a hero. For if there wuz ever a hero it wuz Ralph Smith
Robinson.

Wall, Ralph had been in the unbroken silences of nature so long, that
the clack, and crash, and clamor of what we call civilized life almost
crazed him.

He had been where his Maker almost seemed to come down and walk with
him through the sweet, unbroken stillnesses of mornin’ and evenin’. The
world seemed so fur off to him, and the Eternal Verities of life so
near, that truly, it sometimes seemed to him as if, like one of old, “he
walked with God.” Of course the savages war-whooped some, but they
wuz still a good deal of the time, which is more than you can say for
Yankees.

And Loontown when he got home was rent to its very twain with a
Presidential election.

Ralph suffered.

But above all his other sufferin’s, he suffered from church bells.

Miss Timson lived, as it wuz her wish, and often her boast, right under
the droppin’s of the sanctuary.

She lotted on it when she bought the place. The Baptist steeple towered
up right by the side of her house. Her spare bed wuz immegietly under
the steeple.

Wall, comin’ as he did from a place where he wuz called to worship by
the voice of his soul and his good silver watch--this volume of clamor,
this rushin’ Niagara of sound a-pourin’ down into his ears, wuz
perfectly intolerable and onbeerable. He would lay awake till mornin’
dreadin’ the sound, and then colapse under it, till it run along and he
come down with nervous fever.

He wuz worn out no doubt by his labors before he come, and any way he
wuz took bed-sick, and couldn’t be moved so’s the doctor said, and he
bein’ outside of his own head, delerius, couldn’t of course advance no
idees of his own, so he lay and suffered.



CHAPTER XXIII.


Miss Timson’s letter wuz writ to me on the 6th day of his sickness, and
Josiah and me set sail for Loontown on the follerin’ day after we got
it.

I laid the case before the female Sisters of the meetin’ house, and they
all counselled me to go. For, as they all said, on account of Sister
Bobbet’s fallin’ on the apple parin’ we could not go on with the work
of paperin’ the meetin’ house, and so the interests of Zion wouldn’t
languish on account of my absence for a day or two any way. And, as the
female Sisters all said, it seemed as if the work I wuz called to in
Loontown wuz a fair and square case of Duty, so they all counselled
me to go, every one on ‘em. Though, as wuz nateral, there wuz severel
divisions of opinions as to the road I should take a-goin’ there, what
day I should come back, what remiedies wuz best for me to recommend
when I got there, what dress I should wear, and whether I should wear
a hankerchif pin or not--or a bib apron, or a plain banded one, etc.,
etc., etc., etc.

But, as I sez, as to my goin’ they wuz every one on ‘em unanimus. They
meen well, those sisters in the meetin’ house do, every one on ‘em.

Josiah acted real offish at first about goin’. And he laid the case
before the male brothers of the meetin’ house, for Josiah wuz fearful
that the interests of the buzz saw mill would languish in his absence.
One or two of the weaker brethren joined in with him, and talked kinder
deprestin’ about it.

But Deacon Sypher and Deacon Henzy said they would guard his interests
with eagle visions, or somethin’ to that effect, and they counselled
Josiah warmly that it wuz his duty to go.

We hearn afterwards that Deacon Sypher and Deacon Henzy wanted to go
into the North Woods a-fishin’ and a-huntin’ for 2 or 3 days, and it has
always been spozed by me that that accounted for their religeus advice
to Josiah Allen.

Howsumever, I don’t _know_ that. But I do know that they started off
a-fishin’ the very day we left for Loontown, and that they come back
home about the time we did, with two long strings of trout.

[Illustration: THE RETURN OF THE HUNTERS.]

And there wuz them that said that they ketched the trout, and them that
said they bought ‘em.

And they brung back the antlers of a deer in their game bags, and some
bones of a elk. And there are them that sez that they dassent, either
one of ‘em, shoot off a gun, not hardly a pop gun. But I don’t know the
truth of this. I know what they _said_, they _said_ the huntin’ wuz
excitin’ to the last degree, and the fishin’ superb.

And there wuz them that said that they should think the huntin’ would be
excitin’, a-rummagin’ round on the ground for some old bones, and they
should think the fishin’ would be superb, a-dippin’ ‘em out of a barell
and stringin’ ‘em onto their own strings.

But their stories are very large, that I know. And each one on ‘em,
accordin’ to their tell, ketched more trouts than the other one, and fur
bigger ones, and shot more deers.

Wall, Deacon Sypher’ses advice and Deacon Henzy’s influenced Josiah a
good deal, and I said quite a few words to him on the subject, and,
suffice it to say, that the next day, about 10 A.M., we set out on our
journey to Loontown.

[Illustration: “MISS TIMSON AND ROSY SEEMED DRETFUL GLAD TO SEE ME.”]

Miss Timson and Rosy seemed dretful glad to see me, but they wuz pale
and wan, wanner fur than I expected to see ‘em; but after I had been
there a spell I see how it wuz. I see that Ralph wuz their hero as well
as their love, and they worshipped him in every way, with their hearts
and their souls and their idealized fancies.

Wall, he wuz a noble lookin’ man as I ever see, fur or near, and as good
a one as they make, he wuz strong and tender, so I couldn’t blame ‘em.

And though I wouldn’t want Josiah to hear me say too much about it, or
mebby it would be best that he shouldn’t, before I had been there 24
hours I begun to feel some as they did.

But my feelin’s wuz strictly in a meetin’ house sense, strictly.

But I begun to feel with them that the middle of the world wuz there in
that bedroom, and the still, white figure a-layin’ there wuz the centre,
and the rest of the world wuz a-revolvin’ round him.

His face wuz worn and marked by the hand of Time and Endeaver. But every
mark wuz a good one. The Soul, which is the best sculptor after all,
had chiselled into his features the marks of a deathless endeavor and
struggle toward goodness, which is God. Had marked it with the divine
sweetness and passion of livin’ and toilin’ for the good of others.

He had gi’n his life jest as truly to seek and save them that wuz lost
as ever any old prophet and martyr ever had sense the world began. But
under all these heavenly expressions that a keen eye could trace in his
good lookin’ face, could be seen a deathly weakness, the consumin’ fire
that wuz a-consumin’ of him.

Miss Timson wept when she see me, and Rosy threw herself into my arms
and sobbed. But I gently ondid her arms from round my neck and give Miss
Timson to understand that I wuz there to _help_ ‘em if I could.

“For,” sez I softly, “the hull future time is left for us to weep in,
but the present wuz the time to try to help Ralph S. Robinson.”

Wall, I laid to, Josiah a-helpin’ me nobly, a-pickin’ burdock leaves
or beet leaves, as the case might be, and a-standin’ by me nobly all
through the follerin’ night (that is, when he wuz awake).

Josiah and I took care on him all that night, Miss Timson refusin’ to
give him into the charge of underlin’s, and we a-offerin’ and not to be
refused.

Wall, Josiah slept some, or that is, I s’poze he did. I didn’t hear much
from him from 10 P.M. to 5 A.M., only once I heard him murmer in his
sleep, “buzz saw mill.”

[Illustration: “DIDN’T SEE HOW FOLKS NEEDED SO MUCH SLEEP.”]

But every time I would come out into the settin’ room where he sot and
roust him up to get sunthin’ for me, he would say, almost warmly--

“Samantha, that last remark of your’n wuz very powerful.” And I wouldn’t
waste my time nor hisen by tellin’ him that I hadn’t made no remark, nor
thought on’t. I see it would hurt his feelin’s, specilly as he would add
in haste--

“That he didn’t see how folks needed so much sleep; as for him, it wuz a
real treat to keep awake all night, now and then.”

No, I would let it go, and ask him for burdock or beet, as the case
might be. Truly I had enugh on my mind and heart that night without
disputin’ with my Josiah.

Ralph S. Robinson would lay lookin’ like a dead man some of the time,
still and demute, and then he would speak out in a strange language,
stranger than any I ever heard. He would preach sermons in that
language, I a-knowin’ it wuz a sermen by his gestures, and also by my
feelin’s. And then he would shet up his eyes and pray in that strange,
strange tongue, and anon breakin’ out into our own language. And once he
said:

“And now may the peace of God be with you all. Amen. The peace of God!
the peace! the peace!”

His voice lingered sort o’ lovin’ly over that word, and I felt that he
wuz a-thinkin’ then of the real peace, the onbroken stillness, outside
and inside, that he invoked.

Rosy would steal in now and then like a sweet little shadow, and bend
down and kiss her Pa, and cry a little over his thin, white hands which
wuz a-lyin’ on the coverlet, or else lifted in that strange speech that
sounded so curius to us, a-risin’ up out of the stillness of a Loontown
spare bedroom on a calm moonlit evenin’.

Wall, Friday and Saturday he wuz crazier’n a loon, more’n half the time
he wuz, but along Saturday afternoon the Doctor told us that the fever
would turn sometime the latter part of the night, and if he could sleep
then, and not be disturbed, there would be a chance for his life.

Wall, Miss Timson and Rosy both told me how the ringin’ of the bells
seemed to roust him up and skair him (as it were) and git him all
excited and crazy. And they both wuz dretful anxius about the mornin’
bells which would ring when Ralph would mebby be sleepin’. So thinkin’
it wuz a case of life and death, and findin’ out who wuz the one to
tackle in the matter, I calmly tied on my bonnet and walked over and
tackled him.



CHAPTER XXIV.


It wuz Deacon Garven and he wuz a close communion Baptist by
perswaision, and a good man, so fur as firm morals and a sound creed
goes.

Some things he lacked: he hadn’t no immagination at all, not one speck.
And in makin’ him up, it seems as if he had a leetle more justice added
to him to make up a lack of charity and pity. And he had a good deal
of sternness and resolve gin him, to make up, I spoze, for a lack of
tenderness and sweetness of nater.

A good sound man Deacon Garven wuz, a man who would cheat himself before
he would cheat a neighber. He wuz jest full of qualities that would
hender him from ever takin’ a front part in a scandel and a tragedy.
Yes, if more men wuz like Deacon Garven the pages of the daily papers
would fairly suffer for rapiners, embezzlers, wife whippers, etc.

Wall, he wuz in his office when I tackled him. The hired girl asked me
if I come for visitin’ purposes or business, and I told her firmly,
“business!”

So she walked me into a little office one side of the hall, where I
spoze the Deacon transacted the business that come up on his farm, and
then he wuz Justice of the Peace, and trustee of varius concerns (every
one of ‘em good ones).

He is a tall, bony man, with eyes a sort of a steel gray, and thin lips
ruther wide, and settin’ close together. And without lookin’ like one,
or, that is, without havin’ the same features at all, the Deacon did
make me think of a steel trap. I spoze it wuz because he wuz so sound,
and sort o’ firm. A steel trap is real firm when it lays hold and tries
to be.

[Illustration: “THE DEACON DID MAKE ME THINK OF A STEEL TRAP.”]

Wall, I begun the subject carefully, but straight to the pint, as my way
is, by tellin’ him that Ralph S. Robinson wuz a-layin’ at death’s door,
and his life depended on his gettin’ sleep, and we wuz afraid the bells
in the mornin’ would roust him up,  and I had come to see if he would
omit the ringin’ of ‘em in the mornin’.

“Not ring the bells!” sez he, in wild amaze. “Not ring the church bells
on the Sabbath day?”

His look wuz skairful in the extreme, but I sez--

“Yes, that is what I said, we beg of you as a Christian to not ring the
bells in the mornin’.”

“A Christian! A Christian! Advise me as a _Christian_ to not ring the
Sabbath bells!”

I see the idee skairt him. He wuz fairly pale with surprise and borrow.
And I told him agin’, puttin’ in all the perticilers it needed to make
the story straight and good, how Ralph S. Robinson had labored for
the good of others, and how his strength had gin out, and he wuz now
a-layin’ at the very pint of death, and how his girl and his sister wuz
a-breakin’ their hearts over him, and how we had some hopes of savin’
his life if he could get some sleep, that the doctors said his life
depended on it, and agin I begged him to do what we asked.

But the Deacon had begin to get over bein’ skairt, and he looked firm as
anybody ever could, as he sez: “The bells never hurt anybody, I know,
for here I have lived right by the side of ‘em for 20 years. Do I look
broke down and weak?” sez he.

“No,” sez I, honestly. “No more than a grannit monument, or a steel
trap.”

“Wall,” sez he, “what don’t hurt me won’t hurt nobody else.”

“But,” sez I, “folks are made up different.” Sez I, “The Bible sez so,
and what might not hurt you, might be the ruin of somebody else. Wuz you
ever nervous?” sez I.

“Never,” sez he. And he added firmly, “I don’t believe in nerves. I
never did. There hain’t no use in ‘m.”

“It wuz a wonder they wuz made, then,” sez I. “As a generel thing the
Lord don’t make things there hain’t no use on. Howsumever,” sez I,
“there hain’t no use in disputin’ back and forth on a nerve. But any
way, sickness is so fur apart from health, that the conditions of one
state can’t be compared to the other; as Ralph S. Robinson is now, the
sound of the bells, or any other loud noise means torture and agony to
him, and, I am afraid, death. And I wish you would give orders to not
have ‘em rung in the mornin’.”

“Are you a professor?” sez he.

“Yes,” sez I.

“What perswaision?” sez he.

“Methodist Episcopal,” sez I.

“And do you, a member of a sister church, which, although it has many
errors, is still a-gropin’ after the light! Do you counsel me to set
aside the sacred and time honored rules of our church, and allow the
Sabbath to go by unregarded, have the sanctuary desecrated, the cause
of religion languish--I cannot believe it. Think of the widespread
desolation it would cause if, as the late lamented Mr. Selkirk sung:

  “‘The sound of the church-going bells,
  These valleys and hills never heard.’”

“No church, no sanctuary, no religius observances.”

“Why,” sez I, “that wouldn’t hinder folks from goin’ to church. Folks
seem to get to theatres, lectures, and disolvin’ views on time, and
better time than they do to meetin’,” sez I. “In your opinin’ it hain’t
necessary to beat a drum and sound on a bugle as the Salvation Army duz,
to call folks to meetin’; you are dretful hard on them, so I hear.”

“Yes, they make a senseless, vulgar, onnecessary racket, disturbin’ and
agrivatin’ to saint and sinner.”

“But,” sez I, “they say they do it for the sake of religion.”

“Religion hain’t to be found in drum-sticks,” sez he bitterly.

“No,” sez I, “nor in a bell clapper.”

“Oh,” sez he, “that is a different thing entirely, that is to call
worshippers together, that is necessary.”

Sez I, “One hain’t no more necessary than the other in my opinion.”

Sez he, “Look how fur back in the past the sweet bells have sounded
out.”

“Yes,” sez I candidly, “and in the sweet past they wuz necessary,” sez
I. “In the sweet past, there wuzn’t a clock nor a watch, the houses wuz
fur apart, and they needed bells. But now there hain’t a house but what
is runnin’ over with clocks--everybody knows the time; they know it so
much that time is fairly a drug to ‘em. Why, they time themselves right
along through the day, from breakfast to midnight. Time their meals,
their business, their pleasures, their music, their lessons, their
visits, their visitors, their pulse beats, and their dead beats. They
time their joys and their sorrows, and everything and everybody, all
through the week, and why should they stop short off Sundays? Why not
time themselves on goin’ to meetin’? They do, and you know it. There
hain’t no earthly need of the bells to tell the time to go to meetin’,
no more than there is to tell the time to put on the tea-kettle to get
supper. If folks want to go to meetin’ they will get there, bells or no
bells, and if they don’t want to go, bells hain’t a-goin’ to get ‘em
started.

“Take a man with the Sunday _World_ jest brung in, a-layin’ on a lounge,
with his feet up in a chair, and kinder lazy in the first place, bells
hain’t a-goin’ to start him.

“And take a woman with her curl papers not took down, and a new religeus
novel in her hand, and a miliner that disapinted her the night before,
and bells hain’t a-goin’ to start her. No, the great bell of Moscow
won’t start ‘em.

[Illustration: “BELLS HAIN’T A-GOIN’ TO START HIM.”]

“And take a good Christian woman, a widow, for instance, who loves
church work, and has a good handsome Christian pasture, who is in
trouble, lost his wife, mebby, or sunthin’ else bad, and the lack of
bells hain’t a-goin’ to keep that women back, no, not if there wuzn’t a
bell on earth.”

“Oh, wall, wavin’ off that side of the subject,” sez he (I had convinced
him, I know, but he wouldn’t own it, for he knew well that if folks
wanted to go they always got there, bells or no bells). “But,” sez he
wavin’ off that side of the subject, “the observance is so time honored,
so hallowed by tender memories and associations all through the past.”

“Don’t you ‘spoze, Deacon Garven,” sez I, “that I know every single
emotion them bells can bring to anybody, and felt all those memorys and
associations. I’ll bet, or I wouldn’t be afraid to bet, if I believed in
bettin’, that there hain’t a single emotion in the hull line of emotions
that the sound of them bells can wake up, but what I have felt, and felt
‘em deep too, jest as deep as anybody ever did, and jest es many of ‘em.
But it is better for me to do without a upliftin’, soarin’ sort of a
feelin’ ruther than have other people suffer agony.”

“Agony!” sez he, “talk about their causin’ agony, when there hain’t a
more heavenly sound on earth.”

[Illustration: “A-LEANIN’ OVER THE FRONT GATE ON A STILL SPRING
MORNIN’.”]

“So it has been to me,” sez I candidly. “To me they have always sounded
beautiful, heavenly. Why,” sez I, a-lookin’ kinder fur off, beyond
Deacon Garven, and all other troubles, as thoughts of beauty and
insperation come to me borne out of  the past into my very soul, by the
tender memories of the bells--thoughts of the great host of believers
who had gathered together at the sound of the bells--the great army of
the Redeemed--

  ‘Some of the host have crossed the flood, and some
  are crossin’ now,’

thinks I a-lookin’ way off in a almost rapped way. And then I sez to
Deacon Garven in a low soft voice, lower and more softer fur, than I had
used to him,

“Don’t I know what it is to stand a-leanin’ over the front gate on a
still spring mornin’, the smell of the lilacs in the air, and the brier
roses. A dew sparklin’ on the grass under the maples, and the sunshine
a-fleckin’ the ground between ‘em, and the robins a-singin’ and the
hummin’ birds a-hoverin’ round the honeysuckles at the door. And over
all and through all, and above all clear and sweet, comin’ from fur
off a-floatin’ through the Sabbath stillness, the sound of the bells,
a-bringin’ to us sweet Sabbath messages of love and joy. Bringin’
memories too, of other mornin’s as fair and sweet, when other ears
listened with us to the sound, other eyes looked out on the summer
beauty, and smiled at the sound of the bells. Heavenly emotions, sweet
emotions come to me on the melody of the bells, peaceful thoughts,
inspirin’ thoughts of the countless multitude that has flocked together
at the sound of the bells. The aged feet, the eager youthful feet, the
children’s feet, all, all walkin’ to the sound of the bells. Thoughts
of the happy youthful feet that set out to walk side by side, at their
ringin’ sounds. Thoughts of the aged ones grown tired, and goin’ to
their long dreamless sleep to their solemn sound. Thoughts of the brave
hero’s who set out to protect us with their lives while the bells wuz
ringin’ out their approval of such deeds. Thoughts of how they pealed
out joyfully on their return bearin’ the form of Peace. Thoughts of how
the bells filled the mornin’ and evenin’ air, havin’ throbbed and beat
with every joy and every pain of our life, till they seem a part of us
(as it were) and the old world would truly seem lonesome without ‘em.

“As I told you, and told you truly, I don’t believe there is a single
emotion in the hull line of emotions, fur or near, but what them bells
have rung into my very soul.

“But such emotions, beautiful and inspirin’ though they are, can be
dispensed with better than justice and mercy can. Sweet and tender
sentiment is dear to me, truly, near and dear, but mercy and pity and
common sense, have also a powerful grip onto my right arm, and have to
lead me round a good deal of the time.

“Beautiful emotion, when it stands opposed to eternal justice, ort to
step gently aside and let justice have a free road. Sentiment is truly
sweet, but any one can get along without it, take it right along through
the year, better than they can without sleep.

“You see if you can’t sleep you must die, while a person can worry along
a good many years without sentiment. Or, that is, I have been told they
could. I don’t know by experience, for I have always had a real lot of
it. You see my experience has been such that I could keep sentiment and
comfort too. But my mind is such, that I have to think of them that
hain’t so fortunate as I am.

“I have looked at the subject from my own standpoint, and have tried
also to look at it through others’ eyes, which is the only way we can
get a clear, straight light on any subject. As for me, as I have said,
I would love to hear the sweet, far off sound of the bells a-tremblin’
gently over the hills to me from Jonesville; it sounds sweeter to me
than the voices of the robins and swallers, a-comin’ home from the South
in the spring of the year. And I would deerly love to have it go on and
on as fur as my own feelins are concerned. But I have got to look at the
subject through the tired eyes, and feel it through the worn-out nerves
of others, who are sot down right under the wild clamor of the bells.

“What comes to me as a heavenly melody freighted full of beautiful
sentiment and holy rapture comes to them as an intolerable agony,
a-maddenin’ discord, that threatens their sanity, that rouses ‘em up
from their fitful sleep, that murders sleep--the bells to them seem
murderus, strikin’ noisily with brazen hands, at their hearts.

[Illustration: “TOSSIN’ ON BEDS OF NERVOUS SUFFERIN’.”]

“To them tossin’ on beds of nervous sufferin’, who lay for hours fillin’
the stillness with horror, with dread of the bells, where fear and dread
of ‘em exceed the agony of the clangor of the sound when it comes at
last. Long nights full of a wakeful horror and expectency, fur worse
than the realization of their imaginin’s. To them the bells are a
instrument of torture jest as tuff to bear as any of the other old thumb
screws and racks that wrung and racked our old 4 fathers in the name of
Religion.

“I have to think of the great crowd of humanity huddled together right
under the loud clangor of the bells whose time of rest begins when the
sun comes up, who have toiled all night for our comfort and luxury. So
we can have our mornin’ papers brought to us with our coffee. So we can
have the telegraphic messages, bringing us good news with our toast.
So’s we can have some of our dear ones come to us from distant lands in
the morning. I must think of them who protect us through the night so we
can sleep in peace.

“Hundreds and hundreds and hundreds of these, our helpers and
benafacters, work all night for our sakes, work and toil. The least we
can do for these is to help ‘em to the great Restorer, sleep, all we
can.

“Some things we can’t do; we can’t stop the creakin’ sounds of the
world’s work; the big roar of the wheel of business that rolls through
the week days, can’t be oiled into stillness; but Sundays they might get
a little rest Sunday is the only day of rest for thousands of men and
wimmen, nervous, pale, worn by their week’s hard toil.

“The creakin’ of the wheels of traffic are stopped on this day. They
could get a little of the rest they need to carry on the fight of life
to help support wife, child, father, husband; but religeon is too much
for ‘em--the religeon that the Bible declares is mild, peacible, tender.
It clangs and bangs and whangs at ‘em till the day of rest is a torment.

“Now the Lord wouldn’t approve of this. I know He wouldn’t, for He was
always tender and pitiful full of compassion. I called it religeon for
oritory, but it hain’t religeon, it is a relict of old Barberism who,
under the cloak of Religeon, whipped quakers and hung prophetic souls,
that the secrets of Heaven had been revealed to, secrets hidden from the
coarser, more sensual vision.”

Sez Deacon Garven: “I consider the bells as missionarys. They help
spread the Gospel.”

“And,” sez I, for I waz full of my subject, and kep him down to it all I
could, “Ralph S. Robinson has spread the Gospel over acres and acres of
land, and brung in droves and droves of sinners into the fold without
the help of church or steeple, let alone bells, and it seems es if he
ortn’t to be tortured to death now by ‘em.”

“Wall,” he said, “he viewed ‘em as Gospel means, and he couldn’t, with
his present views of his duty to the Lord, omit ‘em.”

Sez I, “The Lord didn’t use ‘em. He got along without ‘em.”

“Wall,” he said, “it wuz different times now.”

Sez I, “The Lord, if He wuz here to-day, Deacon Garven, if He had bent
over that form racked with pain and sufferin’ and that noise of any kind
is murderous to, He would help him, I know He would, for He wuz good to
the sick, and tender hearted always.”

“Wall, _I_ will help him,” sez Deacon Garven, “I will watch, and I will
pray, and I will work for him.”

Sez I, “Will you promise me not to ring the bells to-morrow mornin’; if
he gets into any sleep at all durin’ the 24 hours, it is along in the
mornin’, and I think if we could keep him asleep, say all the forenoon,
there would be a chance for him. Will you promise me?”

“Wall,” sez he kinder meltin’ down a little, “I will talk with the
bretheren.”

Sez I, “Promise me, Deacon Eben Garven, before you see ‘em.”

Sez he, “I would, but I am so afraid of bringin’ the Cause of Religeon
into contempt. And I dread meddlin’ with the old established rules of
the church.”

Sez I, “Mercy and justice and pity wuz set up on earth before bells wuz,
and I believe it is safe to foller ‘em.”

But he wouldn’t promise me no further than to talk with the bretheren,
and I had to leave him with that promise. As things turned out
afterwuds, I wuz sorry, sorry es a dog that I didn’t shet up Deacon
Garven in his own smoke house, or cause him to be shet, and mount a
guard over him, armed nearly to the teeth with clubs.

But I didn’t, and I relied some on the bretheren.

Ralph wuz dretful wild all the forepart of the night. He’d lay still for
a few minutes, and then he would get all rousted up, and he would set up
in bed and call out some words in that strange tongue. And he would lift
up his poor weak right arm, strong then in his fever, and preach long
sermons in that same strange curius language. He would preach his sermon
right through, earnest and fervent as any sermon ever wuz. I would know
it by the looks of his face. And then he would sometimes sing a little
in that same singular language, and then he would lay down for a spell.

But along towards mornin’ I see a change, his fever seemed to abate and
go down some--very gradual, till just about the break of day, he fell
into a troubled sleep--or it wuz a troubled sleep at first--but growin’
deeper and more peaceful every minute. And along about eight o’clock he
wuz a-sleepin’ sweet for the first time durin’ his sickness; it wuz a
quiet restful sleep, and some drops of presperation and sweat could be
seen on his softened features.

We all wuz as still, almost, as if we wuz automatoes, we wuz so afraid
of makin’ a speck of noise to disturb him. We kep almost breathless,
in our anxiety to keep every mite of noise out of his room. But I did
whisper to Rosy in a low still voice--

[Illustration: “THE LORD BE PRAISED, WE SHALL PULL HIM THROUGH.”]

“Your father is saved, the Lord be praised, we shall pull him through.”

She jest dropped onto her knees, and laid her head in my lap and cried
and wept, but soft and quiet so’s it wouldn’t disturb a mice.

Miss Timson wuz a-prayin’, I could see that. She wuz a-returnin’ thanks
to the Lord for his mercy.

As for me, I sot demute, in that hushed and darkened room, a-watchin’
every shadow of a change that might come to his features, with a
teaspoon ready to my hand, to give him nourishment at the right time if
he needed it, or medicine.

When all of a sudden--slam! bang! rush! roar! slam! slam! ding! dong!
bang!!! come right over our heads the wild, deafening clamor of the
bells.

Ralph started up wilder than ever because of his momentary repose. He
never knew us, nor anything, from that time on, and after sufferin’ for
another 24 hours, sufferin’ that made us all willin’ to have it stop, he
died.

And so he who had devoted his hull life to religeon wuz killed by it.
He who had gin his hull life for the true, wuz murdered by the false.

[Illustration: “AND I THOUGHT HE WUZ PRONOUNCIN’ A BENEDICTION ON THE
SAVAGES.”]

His last move wuz to spread out his hands, and utter a few of them
strange words, as if in benediction over a kneelin’ multitude. And I
thought then, and I think still, that he wuz pronouncin’ a benediction
on the savages. And I have always hoped that the mercy he besought from
on High at that last hour brought down God’s pity and forgiveness on all
benighted savages, and bigoted ones, Deacon Garven, and the hull on ‘em.



CHAPTER XXV.


The very next day after I got home from Miss Timson’ses, we wimmen all
met to the meetin’ house agin as usial, for we knew very well that the
very hardest and most arjuous part of our work lay before us.

For if it had been hard and tuckerin’ to what it seemed the utmost limit
of tucker, to stand up on a lofty barell, and lift up one arm, and
scrape the ceilin’, what would it be, so we wildly questioned our souls,
and each other, to stand up on the same fearful hites, and lift _both_
arms over our heads, and get on them fearful lengths of paper smooth.

I declare, when the hull magnitude of the task we had tackled riz before
us, it skairt the hull on us, and nuthin’ but our deathless devotion to
the Methodist meetin’ house, kep us from startin’ off to our different
homes on the run.

But lovin’ it as we did, as the very apples in our eyes, and havin’ in
our constant breasts a determinate to paper that meetin’ house, or die
in the attempt, we made ready to tackle it.

[Illustration: “WE HAD TO WAIT FOR THE PASTE TO BILE.”]

Yet such wuz the magnitude of the task, and our fearful apprehensions,
that after we had looked the ceilin’ all over, and examined the
paper--we all sot down, as it were, instinctivly, and had a sort of a
conference meetin’ (we had to wait for the paste to bile anyway, it wuz
bein’ made over the stove in the front entry). And he would lift up his
poor weak right arm, strong then in his fever, and preach long sermons
in that same strange curius language. He would preach his sermon right
through, earnest and fervent as any sermon ever wuz. I would know it by
the looks of his face. And then he would sometimes sing a little in that
same singular language, and then he would lay down for a spell.

But along towards mornin’ I see a change, his fever seemed to abate and
go down some--very gradual, till just about the break of day, he fell
into a troubled sleep--or it wuz a troubled sleep at first--but growin’
deeper and more peaceful every minute. And along about eight o’clock he
wuz a-sleepin’ sweet for the first time durin’ his sickness; it wuz a
quiet restful sleep, and some drops of presperation and sweat could be
seen on his softened features.

[Illustration: “WE ALL SET AND LAID ON OUR PLANS, AND CUT THE EDGES
OFFEN THE PAPER.”]

We all wuz as still, almost, as if we wuz automatoes, we wuz so afraid
of makin’ a speck of noise to disturb him. We kep almost breathless, in
our anxiety to keep every mite of noise out of his room. But I did
whisper to Rosy in a low still voice--it middlin calm, and Miss Gowdy
offered to be the one to carry it back to Jonesville, and change it that
very afternoon--for we could not afford to buy a new one, and we had the
testimony of as many as twenty-one or two pairs of eyes, that the handle
didn’t come out by our own carelessness, but by its own inherient
weakness--so we spozed he would swap it, we spozed so. But it wuz
arrainged before we disbanded (the result of our conference), that the
next mornin’ we would each one on us bring our offerin’s to the fair,
and hand ‘em in to the treasurer, so’s she would know in time what to
depend on, and what she had to do with.

And we agreed (also the result of our conference) that we would, each
one on us, tell jest how we got the money and things to give to the
fair.

And then we disbanded and started off home but I’ll bet that each one on
us, in a sort of secret unbeknown way, gin a look on that lofty ceilin’,
them dangerus barells, and that pile of paper, and groaned a low
melancholy groan all to herself.

[Illustration: “THE HANDLE COME OUT.”]

I know I did, and I know Submit Tewksbury did, for I stood close to her
and heard her. But then to be exactly jest, and not a mite underhanded,
I ort mebby to say, that her groan may be caused partly by the fact that
that aniversery of hern wuz a-drawin’ so near. Yes, the very next day
wuz the day jest 20 years ago that Samuel Danker went away from Submit
Tewksbury to heathen lands. Yes, the next day wuz the one that she
always set the plate on for him--the gilt edged chiny with pink sprigs.

But I’ll bet that half or three quarters of that low melancholy groan of
her’n wuz caused by the hardness of the job that loomed up in front of
us, and the hull of mine wuz.

Wall, that night Josiah Allen wuz a-feelin’ dretful neat, fer he had
sold our sorell colt for a awful big price.

It wuz a good colt; its mother wuz took sick when it wuz a few days old,
and we had brung it up as a corset, or ruther I did, fer Josiah Allen
at that time had the rheumatiz to that extent that he couldn’t step his
foot on the floor for months, so the care of the corset come on me, most
the hull on it, till it got big enough to run out in the lot and git its
own livin’.

Night after night I used to get up and warm milk for it, when it wuz
very small, for it wuz weakly, and we didn’t know as we could winter it.

[Illustration: “I WOULD MEANDER OUT THERE IN A ICY NIGHT TO FEED IT.”]

We kep it in a little warm shed offen the wood house for quite a spell,
but still I used to find it considerable cold when I would meander out
there in a icy night to feed it.  But jest as it is always the way with
wimmen, the more care I took on it, the more it needed me and depended
on me, the better I liked it.

Till I got to likin’ it so well that it wuzn’t half so hard a job for me
to go out to feed it in the night as it would have been to laid still in
my warm bed and think mebby it wuz cold and hungry.

So I would pike out and feed it two or three times a night.

That is the nater of wimmen, the weaker it wuz and the humblier it wuz,
and the more it needed me, the more I thought on it.

And as is the nater of man, Josiah Allen didn’t seem to care so much
about it while it wuz weak and humbly and spindlin’.

He told me time and agin, that I couldn’t save it, and it never would
amount to anythin’, and wuzn’t nothin’ but legs any way, and lots of
other slightin’ remarks. And he’d call it “horse corset” in a kind of
a light, triflin’ way, that wuz apt to gaul a woman when she come back
with icy night-gown and frosty toes and fingers, way along in the night.

[Illustration: “BEEN OUT TO TEND TO YOUR ‘HORSE CORSET,’ HAVE YOU?”]

He’d wake up, a-layin’ there warm and comfortable on his soft goose
feather piller and say to me:  “Been out to tend to your ‘horse corset,’
have you?”

“_Horse corset_! ‘Wall, what if it wuz?”

Such language way along in the night, from a warm comfortable pardner to
a cold one, is apt to make some words back and forth.

And then he’d speak of its legs agin, in the most slightin’ terms--and
he’d ask me if didn’t want its picter took--etc., etc., etc.

(I believe one thing that ailed Josiah Allen wuz he didn’t want me to
get up and get my feet so cold).

But, as I wuz a-sayin’, though I couldn’t deny some of his words, for
truly its legs did seem to be at the least calculation a yard and a half
long, specilly in the night, why they’d look fairly pokerish.

And though I knew it wuz humbly still I persevered, and at last it
got to thrivin’ and growin’ fast. And the likelier it grew, and the
stronger, and the handsomer, so Josiah Allen’s likin’ for it grew and
increased, till he got to settin’ a sight of store by it.

And now it wuz a two-year-old, and he had sold it for two hundred and
fifteen dollars. It wuz spozed it wuz goin’ to make a good trotter.

Wall, seem’ he had got such a big price for the colt, and knowin’ well
that I wuz the sole cause of its bein’ alive at this day, I felt that it
wuz the best time in the hull three hundred and sixty-five days of the
year to tackle him for sunthin’ to give to the fair. I felt that the
least he could do would be to give me ten or fifteen dollars for it. So
consequently after supper wuz out of the way, and the work done up, I
tackled him.



CHAPTER XXVI.


He wuz jest a-countin’ out his money prior to puttin’ it away in his tin
box, and I laid the subject before him strong and eloquent, jest the
wants and needs of the meetin’ house, and jest how hard we female
sisters wuz a-workin’, and jest how much we needed some money to buy our
ingregiencies with for the fair.

He set still, a-countin’ out his money, but I know he heard me. There
wuz four fifty dollar bills, a ten, and a five, and I felt that at the
very least calculation he would hand me out the ten or the five, and
mebby both on ‘em.

But he laid ‘em careful in the box, and then pulled out his old
pocket-book out of his pocket, and handed me a ten cent piece.

[Illustration: “HANDED ME A TEN CENT PIECE.”]

I wuz mad. And I hain’t a-goin’ to deny that we had some words. Or at
least I said some words  to him, and gin him a middlin’ clear idee of
how I felt on the subject.

Why, the colt wuz more mine than his in the first place, and I didn’t
want a cent of money for myself, but only wanted it for the good of the
Methodist meetin’ house, which he ort to be full as interested in as I
wuz.

Yes, I gin him a pretty lucid idee of what my feelin’s wuz on the
subject--and spozed mebby I had convinced him. I wuz a-standin’ with my
back to him, a-ironin’ a shirt for him, when I finished up my piece
of mind. And thought more’n as likely as not he’d break down and be
repentent, and hand me out a ten dollar bill.

But no, he spoke out as pert and cheerful as anything and sez he:

“Samantha, I don’t think it is necessary for Christians to give such a
awful sight. Jest look at the widder’s mit.”

I turned right round and looked at him, holdin’ my flat-iron in my right
hand, and sez I:

“What do you mean, Josiah Allen? What are you talkin’ about?”

[Illustration: “WHAT DO YOU MEAN, JOSIAH ALLEN? WHAT ARE YOU TALKIN’ ABOUT?”]

“Why the widder’s mit that is mentioned in Scripter, and is talked about
so much by Christians to this day. Most probable it wuz a odd one, I
dare persume to say she had lost the mate to it. It specilly mentions
that there wuzn’t but one on ‘em. And jest see how much that is talked
over, and praised up clear down the ages, to this day. It couldn’t have
been worth more’n five cents, if it wuz worth that.”

“How do you spell mit, Josiah Allen?” sez I.

“Why m-i-t-e, mit.”

“I should think,” sez I, “that that spells mite.”

“Oh well, when you are a-readin’ the Bible, all the best commentaters
agree that you must use your own judgment. Mite! What sense is there in
that? Widder’s mite! There hain’t any sense in it, not a mite.”

And Josiah kinder snickered here, as if he had made a dretful cute
remark, bringin’ the “mite” in in that way. But I didn’t snicker, no,
there wuzn’t a shadow, or trace of anything to be heard in my linement,
but solemn and bitter earnest. And I set the flat-iron down on the
stove, solemn, and took up another, solemn, and went to ironin’ on his
shirt collar agin with solemnety and deep earnest. “No,” Josiah Allen
continued, “there hain’t no sense in that--but mit! there you have
sense. All wimmen wear mits; they love ‘em. She most probable had a good
pair, and lost one on ‘em, and then give the other to the church. I tell
you it takes men to translate the Bible, they have such a realizin’
sense of the weaknesses of wimmen, and how necessary it is to translate
it in such a way as to show up them weaknesses, and quell her down, and
make her know her place, make her know that man is her superior in every
way, and it is her duty as well as privilege to look up to him.”

And Josiah Allen crossed his left leg over his right one, as haughty
and over bearin’ a-crossin’ as I ever see in my life, and looked up
haughtily at the stove-pipe hole in the ceilin’, and resoomed,

“But, as I wuz sayin’ about her mit, the widder’s, you know. That is
jest my idee of givin’, equinomical, savin’, jest as it should be.”

“Yes,” sez I, in a very dry axent, most as dry as my flat-iron, and that
wuz fairly hissin’ hot. “She most probable had some man to advise her,
and to tell her what use the mit would be to support a big meetin’
house.” Oh, how dry my axent wuz. It wuz the very dryest, and most irony
one I keep by me--and I keep dretful ironikle ones to use in cases of
necessity.

“Most probable,” sez Josiah, “most probable she did.” He thought I wuz
praisin’ men up, and he acted tickled most to death.

“Yes, some man without any doubt, advised her, told her that some other
widder would lose one of hern, and give hers to the meetin’ house, jest
the mate to hern. That is the way I look at it,” sez he “and I mean to
mention that view of mine on this subject the very next time they take
up a subscription in the meetin’ house and call on me.”

But I turned and faced him then with the hot flat-iron in my hand, and
burnin’ indignation in my eys, and sez I:

“If you mention that, Josiah Allen, in the meetin’ house, or to any
livin’ soul on earth, I’ll part with you.” And I would, if it wuz the
last move I ever made.

But I gin up from that minute the idea of gettin’ anything out of Josiah
Allen for the fair. But I had some money of my own that I had got by
sellin’ three pounds of geese feathers and a bushel of dried apples,
every feather picked by me, and every quarter of apple pared and peeled
and strung and dried by me. It all come to upwerds of seven dollars, and
I took every cent of it the next day out of my under bureau draw and
carried it to the meetin’ house and gin it to the treasurer, and told
‘em, at the request of the hull on ‘em, jest how I got the money.

And so the hull of the female sisters did, as they handed in their
money, told jest how they come by it.

Sister Moss had seated three pairs of children’s trouses for young Miss
Gowdy, her children are very hard on their trouses (slidin’ down the
banesters and such). And young Miss Gowdy is onexperienced yet in
mendin’, so the patches won’t show. And Sister Moss had got forty-seven
cents for the job, and brung it all, every cent of it, with the
exception of three cents she kep out to buy peppermint drops with. She
has the colic fearful, and peppermint sometimes quells it.

Young Miss Gowdy wuz kep at home by some new, important business
(twins). But she sent thirty-two cents, every cent of money she could
rake and scrape, and that she had scrimped out of the money her husband
had gin her for a woosted dress. She had sot her heart on havin’ a
ruffle round the bottom (he didn’t give her enough for a overshirt),
but she concluded to make it plain, and sent the ruffle money.

And young Sister Serena Nott had picked geese for her sister, who
married a farmer up in Zoar. She had picked ten geese at two cents
apiece, and Serena that tender-hearted that it wuz like pickin’ the
feathers offen her own back.

[Illustration: “SHE HAD PICKED TEN GEESE AT TWO CENTS APIECE.”]

And then she is very timid, and skairt easy, and she owned up that while
the pickin’ of the geese almost broke her heart, the pickin’ of the
ganders almost skairt her to death. They wuz very high headed and
warlike, and though she put a stockin’ over their heads, they would lift
‘em right up, stockin’ and all, and hiss, and act, and she said she
picked ‘em at what seemed to her to be at the resk of her life.

But she loved the meetin’ house, so she grin and bore it, as the sayin’
is, and she brung the hull of her hard earned money, and handed it over
to the treasurer, and everybody that is at all educated knows that twice
ten is twenty. She brung twenty cents.

Sister Grimshaw had, and she owned it right out and out, got four
dollars and fifty-three cents by sellin’ butter on the sly. She had took
it out of the butter tub when Brother Grimshaw’s back wuz turned, and
sold it to the neighbors for money at odd times through the year, and
besides gettin’ her a dress cap (for which she wuz fairly sufferin’),
she gin the hull to the meetin’ house.

There wuz quite dubersome looks all round the room when she handed in
the money and went right out, for she had a errent to the store.

And Sister Gowdy spoke up and said she didn’t exactly like to use money
got in that way.

But Sister Lanfear sprunted up, and brung Jacob right into the argument,
and the Isrealites who borrowed jewelry of the Egyptians, and then she
brung up other old Bible characters, and held ‘em up before us.

But still we some on us felt dubersome. And then another sister spoke up
and said the hull property belonged to Sister Grimshaw, every mite of
it, for he wuzn’t worth a cent when he married her--she wuz the widder
Bettenger, and had a fine property. And Grimshaw hadn’t begun to earn
what he had spent sense (he drinks). So, sez she, it all belongs to
Sister Grimshaw, by right.

Then the sisters all begin to look less dubersome. But I sez:

“Why don’t she come out openly and take the money she wants for her own
use, and for church work, and charity?”

“Because he is so hard with her,” sez Sister Lanfear, “and tears round
so, and cusses, and commits so much wickedness. He is willin’ she should
dress well--wants her to--and live well. But he don’t want her to spend
a cent on the meetin’ house. He is a atheist, and he hain’t willin’ she
should help on the Cause of religeon. And if he knows of her givin’
any to the Cause, he makes the awfulest fuss, scolds, and swears, and
threatens her, so’s she has been made sick by it, time and agin.”

“Wall,” sez I, “what business is it to him what she does with her own
money and her own property?”

I said this out full and square. But I confess that I did feel a little
dubersome in my own mind. I felt that she ort to have took it more
openly.

And Sister Grimshaw’s sister Amelia, who lives with her (onmarried and
older than Sister Grimshaw, though it hain’t spozed to be the case, for
she has hopes yet, and her age is kep). She had been and contoggled
three days and a half for Miss Elder Minkley, and got fifty cents a day
for contogglin’.

She had fixed over the waists of two old dresses, and contoggled a
old dress skirt so’s it looked most as well as new. Amelia is a good
contoggler and a good Christian. And I shouldn’t be surprised any day to
see her snatched away by some widower or bachelder of proper age. She
would be willin’, so it is spozed.

Wall, Sister Henn kinder relented at the last, and brung two pairs of
fowls, all picked, and tied up by their legs. And we thought it wuz
kinder funny and providential that one Henn should bring four more
of’em.

But we wuz tickled, for we knew we could sell ‘em to the grocer man at
Jonesville for upwerds of a dollar bill.

[Illustration: “SUBMIT TEWKSBURY DID BRING THAT PLATE.”]

And Submit Tewksbury, what should that good little creeter bring, and we
couldn’t any of us hardly believe our eyes at first, and think she could
part with it, but she did bring _that plate_. That pink edged, chiny
plate, with gilt sprigs, that she had used as a memorial of Samuel
Danker for so many years. Sot it up on the supper table and wept in
front of it.

Wall, she knew old china like that would bring a fancy price, and she
hadn’t a cent of money she could bring, and she wanted to do her full
part towerds helpin’ the meetin’ house along--so she tore up her
memorial, a-weepin’ on it for hours, so we spozed, and offered it up, a
burnt chiny offerin’ to the Lord.

Wall, I am safe to say, that nothin’ that had took place that day had
begun to affect us like that.

To see that good little creeter lookin’ pale and considerble wan, hand
in that plate and never groan over it, nor nothin’, not out loud she
didn’t, but we spozed she kep up a silent groanin’ inside of her, for we
all knew the feelin’ she felt for the plate.

It affected all on us fearfully.

But the treasurer took it, and thanked her almost warmly, and Submit
merely sez, when she wuz thanked: “Oh, you are entirely welcome to it,
and I hope it will fetch a good price, so’s to help the cause along.”

And then she tried to smile a little mite. But I declare that smile wuz
more pitiful than tears would have been.

Everybody has seen smiles that seemed made up, more than half, of unshed
tears, and withered hopes, and disappointed dreams, etc., etc.

Submit’s smile wuz of that variety, one of the very curiusest of ‘em,
too. Wall, she gin, I guess, about two of ‘em, and then she went and sot
down.



CHAPTER XXVII.


And now I am goin’ to relate the very singulerist thing that ever
happened in Jonesville, or the world--although it is eppisodin’ to tell
on it now, and also a-gettin’ ahead of my story, and hitchin’, as you
may say, my cart in front of my horse. But it has got to be told and I
don’t know but I may as well tell it now as any time.

Mebby you won’t believe it. I don’t know as I should myself, if it wuz
told to me, that is, if it come through two or three. But any way it is
the livin’ truth.

That very night as Submit Tewksbury sat alone at her supper table,
a-lookin’ at that vacent spot on the table-cloth opposite to her, where
the plate laid for Samuel Danher had set for over twenty years, she
heard a knock at the door, and she got up hasty and wiped away her tears
and opened the door. A man stood there in the cold a-lookin’ into the
warm cosy little room. He didn’t say nothin’, he acted strange. He gin
Submit a look that pierced clear to her heart (so they say). A look
that had in it the crystallized love and longin’ of twenty years of
faithfulness and heart hunger and homesickness. It wuz a strange look.

Submit’s heart begun to flutter, and her face grew red and then white,
and she sez in a little fine tremblin’ voice,

“Who be you?”

And he sez,

“I am Samuel Danker.”

And then they say she fainted dead away, and fell over the rockin’
chair, he not bein’ near enough to ketch her.

And he brung her to on a burnt feather that fell out of the chair
cushion when she fell. There wuz a small hole in it, so they say, and
the feather oozed out.

I don’t tell this for truth, I only say that _they say_ thus and so.

[Illustration: “I AM SAMUEL DANKER.”]

But as to Samuel’s return, that I can swear to, and so can Josiah. And
that they wuz married that  very night of his return, that too can be
swore to. A old minister who lived next door to Submit--superanuated,
but life enough in him to marry ‘em safe and sound, a-performin’ the
ceremony.

It made a great stir in Jonesville, almost enormus.

But they wuz married safe enough, and happy as two gambolin’ lambs, so
they say. Any way Submit looks ten years younger than she did, and I
don’t know but more. I don’t know but she looks eleven or twelve years
younger, and Samuel, why they say it is a perfect sight to see how happy
he looks, and how he has renewed his age.

The hull affair wuz very pleasin’ to the Jonesvillians. Why there wuzn’t
more’n one or two villians but what wuz fairly delighted by it, and they
wuz spozed to be envius.

And I drew severel morals from it, and drew ‘em quite a good ways too,
over both religous and seckuler grounds.

One of the seekuler ones wuz drawed from her not settin’ the table for
him that night, for the first time for twenty years, givin’ away the
plate, and settin’ on (with tears) only a stun chiny one for herself.
How true it is that if a female woman keeps dressed up slick, piles of
extra good cookin’ on hand, and her house oncommon clean, and she sets
down in a rockin’ chair, lookin’ down the road for company.

[Illustration: “THEY DON’T COME!”] _They don’t come!_

But let her on a cold mornin’ leave her dishes onwashed, and her floors
onswept, and put on her husband’s old coat over her meanest dress, and
go out (at his urgent request) to help him pick up apples before the
frost spiles ‘em. She a-layin’ out to cook up some vittles to put on to
her empty shelves when she goes into the house, she not a-dreamin’ of
company at that time of day.

_They come!_

Another moral and a more religeus one. When folks set alone sheddin’
tears on their empty hands, that seem to ‘em to be emptied of all
hope and happiness forever. Like es not some Divine Compensation is
a-standin’ right on the door steps, ready to enter in and dwell with
‘em.

Also that when Submit Tewksbury thought she had gin away for conscience’
sake, her dearest treasure, she had a dearer one gin to her--Samuel
Danker by name.

[Illustration: “THEY COME.”]

Also I drew other ones of various sizes, needless to recapitulate, for
time is hastenin’, and I have eppisoded too fur, and to resoom, and take
up agin on my finger the thread of my discourse, that  I dropped in the
Methodist meetin’ house at Jonesville, in front of the treasurer.

Wall, Submit brought the plate.

Sister Nash brought twenty-three cents all in pennys, tied up in the
corner of a old handkercif. She is dretful poor, but she had picked up
these here and there doin’ little jobs for folks.

And we hadn’t hardly the heart to take ‘em, nor the heart to refuse
takin’ ‘em, she wuz so set on givin’ ‘em. And it wuz jest so with Mahala
Crane, Joe Cranes’es widder.

She, too, is poor, but a Christian, if there ever wuz one. She had made
five pair of overhawls for the clothin’ store in Loontown, for which she
had received the princely revenue of fifty cents.

She handed the money over to the treasurer, and we wuz all on us
extremely worked upon and wrought up to see her do it, for she did it
with such a cheerful air. And her poor old calico dress she had on wuz
so thin and wore out, and her dingy alpaca shawl wuz thin to mendin’,
and all darned in spots. We all felt that Mahala had ort to took the
money to get her a new dress.

[Illustration: “SISTER ARVILLY LANFRAR, CANVASSIN’ FOR A BOOK.”]

But we dasted none on us to say so to her. I  wouldn’t have been the one to
tell her that for a dollar bill, she seemed to be so happy a-givin’ her
part towerds the fair, and for the good of the meetin’ house she loved.

Wall, Sister Meachim had earned two dollars above her wages--she is a
millinner by perswasion, and works at a millinner’s shop in Jonesville.
She had earned the two dollars by stayin’ and workin’ nights after the
day’s work wuz done.

And Sister Arvilly Lanfear had earned three dollars and twenty-eight
cents by canvassin’ for a book. The name of the book wuz: “The Wild,
Wicked, and Warlike Deeds of Man.”

And Arvilly said she had took solid comfort a-sellin’ it, though she
had to wade through snow and slush half way up to her knees some of the
time, a-trailin’ round from house to house a-takin’ orders fer it. She
said she loved to sell a book that wuz full of truth from the front page
to the back bindin’.

As for me I wouldn’t gin a cent for the book, and I remember we had
some words when she come to our house with it. I told her plain that I
wouldn’t buy no book that belittled my companion, or tried to--sez I,
“Arvilly, men are _jest_ as good as wimmen and no better, not a mite
better.”

And Arvilly didn’t like it, but I made it up to her in other ways. I
gin her some lamb’s wool yarn for a pair of stockin’s most immegictly
afterwerds, and a half bushel of but’nuts. She is dretful fond of
but’nuts.

[Illustration: “OLD MISS BALCH.”]

Wall, Sister Shelmadine had sold ten pounds of maple sugar, and brought
the worth on it.

And Sister Henzy brung four dollars and a half, her husband had gin her
for another purpose, but she took it for this, and thought there wuzn’t
no harm in it, as she laid out to go without the four dollars and a
halt’s worth. It was fine shoes he had gin the money for, and she
calculated to make the old ones do.

And Sister Henzy’s mother, old Miss Balch, she is eighty-three years
old, and has inflamatery rheumatiz in her hands, which makes ‘em all
swelled up and painful. But Sister Henzy said her mother had knit three
pairs of fringed mittens (the hardest work for her hands she could have
laid holt of, and which must have hurt her fearful). But Miss Henzy said
a neighbor had offered her five dollars fer the three pairs, and so she
felt it wuz her duty to knit ‘em, to help the fair along. She is a very
strong Methodist, and loved to forwerd the interests of Zion.

She wuz goin’ to give every cent of the money to the meetin’ house, so
Sister Henzy said, all but ten cents, that she _had_ to have to get
Pond’s Extract with, to bathe her hands. They wuz in a fearful state. We
all felt bad for old Miss Balch, and I don’t believe there wuz a woman
there but what gin her some different receipt fer helpin’ her hands,
besides sympathy, lots and lots of it, and pity.

Wall, Sister Sypher’ses husband is clost, very clost with her. She don’t
have anythin’ to give, only her labor, as well off as they be. And now
he wuz so wrapped up in that buzz saw mill business that she wouldn’t
have dasted to approach him any way, that is, to ask him for a cent.

Wall, what should that good little creeter do but gin all the money she
had earned and saved durin’ the past year or two, and had laid by for
emergincies or bunnets.

She had got over two dollars and seventy-five cents, which she handed
right over to the treasurer of the fair to get materials for fancy work.
When they wuz got she proposed to knit three pairs of men’s socks out
of zephyr woosted, and she said she was goin’ to try to pick enough
strawberrys to buy a pair of the socks for Deacon Sypher. She said it
would be a comfort for her to do it, for they would be so soft for the
Deacon’s feet.

Wall, Sister Gowdy wuz the last one to gin in dress gin to her by her
uncle out to the Ohio. It wuz gin her to mourn for her mother-in-law in.

And what should that good, willin’ creeter do but bring that dress and
gin it to the fair to sell.

We hated to take it, we hated to like dogs, for we knew Sister Gowdy
needed it.

But she would make us take it; she said “if her Mother Gowdy wuz alive,
she would say to her,

“Sarah Ann, I’d ruther not be mourned for in bombazeen than to have the
dear old meetin’ house in Jonesville go to destruction. Sell the dress
and mourn fer me in a black calico.”

_That_ Sister Gowdy said would be, she knew, what Mother Gowdy would say
to her if she wuz alive.

And we couldn’t dispute Sarah Ann, for we all knew that old Miss Gowdy
worked for the meetin’ house as long as she could work for anything.
She loved the Methodist meetin’ house better than she loved husband or
children, though she wuz a good wife and mother. She died with cramps,
and her last request wuz to have this hymn sung to her funeral:

  [Illustration: “I LOVE THY KINGDOM, LORD.”]

  “I love thy kingdom, Lord,
  The house of thine abode,
  The church our dear Redeemer bought
  With His most precious blood.”

The quire all loved Mother Gowdy, and sung it accordin’ to her wishes,
and broke down, I well remember, at the third verse--

  “For her my tears shall fall,
  For her my prayers ascend,
  For her my toil and life be given,
  Till life and toil shall end.”

The quire broke down, and the minister himself shed tears to think how
she had carried out her belief all her life, and died with the thought
of the church she loved on her heart and its name on her lips.

Wall, the dress would sell at the least calculation for eight dollars;
the storekeeper had offered that, but Sarah Ann hoped it would bring ten
to the fair.

It wuz a cross to Sarah Ann, so we could see, for she had loved Mother
Gowdy dretful well, and loved the uncle who had gin it to her, and she
hadn’t a nice black dress to her back. But she said she hadn’t lived
with Mother Gowdy twenty years for nothin’, and see how she would always
sacrifice anything and everything but principle for the good of the
meetin’ house.

Sister Gowdy is a good-hearted woman, and we all on us honored her for
this act of hern, though we felt it wuz almost too much for her to do
it.

Wall, Sister Gowdy wuz the last one to gin in her testimony, and havin’
got through relatin’ our experiences we proceeded to business and
paperin’.



CHAPTER XXVIII.


Sister Sylvester Bobbet and I had been voted on es the ones best
qualified to lead off in the arjeous and hazerdous enterprize.

And though we deeply felt the honor they wuz a-heapin’ on to us, yet
es it hes been, time and agin, in other high places in the land, if it
hadn’t been fer duty that wuz a-grippin’ holt of us, we would gladly
have shirked out of it and gin the honor to some humble but worthy
constituent.

Fer the lengths of paper wuz extremely long, the ceilin’ fearfully high,
and oh! how lofty and tottlin’ the barells looked to us. And we both on
us, Sister Sylvester Bobbet and I, had giddy and dizzy spells right on
the ground, let alone bein’ perched up on barells, a-liftin’ our arms up
fur, fur beyond the strength of their sockets.

[Illustration: “WE FELT NERVED UP TO DO OUR BEST.”]

But duty wuz a-callin’ us, and the other wimmen  also, and it wuzn’t for
me, nor Sister Sylvester Bobbet to wave her nor them off, or shirk out
of hazerdous and dangerous jobs when the good of the Methodist Meetin’
House wuz at the Bay.

No, with as lofty looks as I ever see in my life (I couldn’t see my own,
but I felt ‘em), and with as resolute and martyrous feelin’s as ever
animated two wimmen’s breasts, Sister Sylvester Bobbet and I grasped
holt of the length of paper, one on each end on it, Sister Arvilly
Lanfear and Miss Henzy a-holdin’ it up in the middle like Aaron and Hur
a-holdin’ up Moses’ses arms. We advanced and boldly mounted up onto our
two barells, Miss Gowdy and Sister Sypher a-holdin’ two chairs stiddy
for us to mount up on.

Every eye in the meetin’ house wuz on us. We felt nerved up to do our
best, even if we perished in so doin’, and I didn’t know some of the
time but we would fall at our two posts. The job wuz so much more
wearin’ and awful than we had foreboded, and we had foreboded about it
day and night for weeks and weeks, every one on us.

The extreme hite of the ceilin’; the slipperyness and fragility of the
lengths of paper; the fearful hite and tottlin’ness of the barells; the
dizzeness that swept over us at times, in spite of our marble efforts to
be calm. The dretful achin’ and strainin’ of our armpits, that bid fair
to loosen ‘em from their four sockets. The tremenjous responsibility
that laid onto us to get the paper on smooth and onwrinkled.

It wuz, takin’ it altogether, the most fearful and wearisome hour of my
hull life.

Every female in the room held her breath in deathless anxiety (about
thirty breaths). And every eye in the room wuz on us (about fifty-nine
eyes--Miss Shelmadine hain’t got but one workin’ eye, the other is
glass, though it hain’t known, and must be kep).

Wall, it wuz a-goin’ on smooth and onwrinkled--smiles broke out on every
face, about thirty smiles--a half a minute more and it would be done,
and done well. When at that tryin’ and decisive moment when the fate of
our meetin’ house wuz, as you may say, at the stake, we heard the sound
of hurryin’ feet, and the door suddenly opened, and in walked Josiah
Allen, Deacon Sypher, and Deacon Henzy followed by what seemed to me at
the time to be the hull male part of the meetin’ house.

But we found out afterwerds that there wuz a few men in the meetin’
house that thought wimmen ort to set; they argued that when wimmen had
been standin’ so long they out to set down; they wuz good dispositioned.
But as I sez at the time, it looked to us as if every male Methodist in
the land wuz there and present.

They wuz in great spirits, and their means wuz triumphant and satisfied.

They had jest got the last news from the Conference in New York village,
and had come down in a body to disseminate it to us.

They said the Methodist Conference had decided that the seven wimmen
that had been stood up there in New York for the last week, couldn’t
set, that they wuz too weak and fraguile to set on the Conference.

And then the hull crowd of men, with smiles and haughty linements, beset
Josiah to read it out to us.

So Josiah Allen, with his face nearly wreathed with a smile, a blissful
smile, but as high headed a one as I ever see, read it all out to us.
But he should have to hurry, he said, for he had got to carry the great
and triumphant news all round, up as fur as Zoar, if he had time.

[Illustration: “THE METHODIST CONFERENCE HAD DECIDED THAT WIMMEN WUZ
TOO WEAK TO SET.”]

And so he read it out to us, and as we see that  that
breadth wuz spilte, we stopped our work for a minute and heard it.

And after he had finished it, they all said it wuz a masterly dockument,
the decision wuz a noble one, and it wuz jest what they had always said.
They said they had always known that wimmen wuz too weak, her frame wuz
too tender, she was onfitted by Nater, in mind and in body to contend
with such hardship. And they all agreed that it would be puttin’ the men
in a bad place, and takin’ a good deal offen their dignity, if the fair
sex had been allowed by them to take such hardships onto ‘em. And they
sez, some on ‘em, “Why! what are men in the Methodist meetin’ house for,
if it hain’t to guard the more weaker sect, and keep cares offen ‘em?”

And one or two on ‘em mentioned the words, “cooin’ doves” and “sweet
tender flowerets,” as is the way of men at such times. But they wuz in
too big a hurry to spread themselves (as you may say) in this direction.
They had to hurry off to tell the great news to other places in
Jonesville and up as fer as Loontown and Zoar.

But Sister Arvilly Lanfear, who happened to be a-standin’ in the door
as they went off, she said she heard ‘em out as fer as the gate
a-congratilatin’ themselves and the Methodist Meetin’ House and the
nation on the decesion, for, sez they,

“Them angels hain’t strong enough to set, and I’ve known it all the
time.”

And Sister Sylvester Gowdy sez to me, a-rubbin’ herachin’ armpits--

“If they are as beet out as we be they’d be glad to set down on
anything--a Conference or anything else.”

And I sez, a-wipin’ the presperatin of hard labor from my forwerd,

“For the land’s sake! Yes! I should think so.”

And then with giddy heads and strainin’ armpits we tackled the meetin’
house agin.

[Illustration: The End]



PUBLISHERS’ APPENDIX.


In view of the frequent reference, in this work, to the discussion in
and preceding the General Conference of the Methodist Episcopal Church
of 1888, in regard to the admission of women delegates, the publishers
have deemed it desirable to append the six following addresses delivered
on the floor of the Conference during the progress of that discussion.

The General Conference of the Methodist Episcopal Church is the highest
legislative body of that denomination. It is composed of delegates, both
ministerial and lay, the former being elected by the Annual Conferences,
and the latter by Lay Electoral Conferences. The sessions of the General
Conference are held quadrennially.

Prior to the session held in May, 1888, in New York City, women
delegates were elected, one each, by the four following Lay Electoral
Conferences--namely, The Kansas Conference, The Minnesota Conference,
The Pittsburgh Conference, and The Rock River Conference. Protest was
made against the admission of these delegates on the ground that the
admission of women delegates was not in accord with the constitutional
provisions of the Church, embodied in what are termed the Restrictive
Rules. A special Committee on the Eligibility of Women to Membership in
the General Conference was appointed, consisting of seventeen members,
to whom the protest was referred. On May 3d the Committee reported
adversely to the admission of the four women delegates, the report
alleging “that under the Constitution and laws of the Church as they now
are, women are not eligible as lay delegates in the General Conference.”
 From the discussion following this report, and lasting several days, the
following six addresses, three in favor of and three against the
admission of the women delegates, are selected and presented, with a few
verbal corrections, as published in the official journal of the
Conference.



ADDRESS OF REV. DR. THEODORE L. FLOOD.

I am in accord, in the main, with Dr. Potts and Dr. Brush in what they
have said on this question, unless it may be where my friend who last
spoke said that these ladies, these elected delegates to this body,
ought to be admitted. My judgment and my conscience before the
Discipline of the Methodist Episcopal Church and the Restrictive Rules
is that these women elected by these Electoral Conferences are in this
General Conference.

Their names may not have been called when the roll was called, and yet
it was distinctly stated by the Bishop presiding that morning that they
would be called, and the challenges presented with their names; and
afterward demanded it, the names of these delegates who were not
enrolled with the others were called, and the protests were read. Their
names have been called as members of this body, and they are simply here
as “challenged” members. From that standpoint this question must be
discussed, and any disposition of this case under the circumstances must
be in this direction. These women delegates must be put out of this
General Conference if they are not granted the rights and privileges
of members here. It is not a question of “admitting” them. Before this
report, before the bar of history, we stand, and will be called upon to
vote and act, and millions of people will hold us responsible, and I
dare say that our votes will be recorded as to whether they shall be
“put out” or “stay in.”

Why, sir, the government of the Methodist Episcopal Church exists
for the ministry and membership of the Church. The ministry and the
membership of the Church do not exist for the government. The world was
made for man, and not man for the world. That is the fundamental idea
in the government of God, as He treats us as human beings. That is the
fundamental idea in the government of the Methodist Episcopal Church,
as we are enlisted in the support of that government as ministers
and members of the Church. Now under this system of ecclesiastical
government a time came in our history when we submitted a grave question
to the membership of the Church. It was not a question simply of
petition, asking the membership to send petitions up to the General
Conference. On the contrary, it was submitting a constitutional question
not simply to the male members of the Church, for that grand and noble
man of the Methodist Church, Dr. David Sherman of the New England
Conference, moved himself to strike out the word “male” from the report
of the Committee on Lay Delegation. It came to a vote, and it was
stricken out, two to one in the vote. When that was done, then the
General Conference of our Church submitted to the membership of the
Church the question of lay delegation. But back of the question of lay
delegation was as grave a question, and that was granting the right of
suffrage to the women of the Church. The General Conference assumed
the responsibility of giving to the women the right to vote. It may be
questioned this way; it may be explained that way; but the facts
abide that the General Conference granted to the women of the Church the
right to vote on a great and important question in ecclesiastical law.
Now if you run a parallel along the line of our government--and it has
often been said that there are parallels in the government of the United
States corresponding to lines of legislation and legislative action in
the government of the Church--you will find that the right of suffrage
in the country at the ballot-box has been a gradual growth. One of the
most sacred rights that a man, an American citizen, enjoys is the right
to cast a ballot for the man or men he would have legislate for him; and
for no trivial reason can that right, when once granted to the American
citizen, be taken away from him. Go to the State of Massachusetts, and
trace the history of citizen suffrage, and you find it commenced in this
way: First, a man could vote under the government there who was a member
of the Church. Next, he could vote if he were a freeholder. A little
later on he could vote if he paid a poll-tax. In the government, and
under the legislation of our Church, first the women were granted the
right to vote on the principle of lay delegation, not on the “plan”
 of lay delegation, but on the “principle” of lay delegation. That was
decided by Bishop Simpson in the New Hampshire Conference, and by Bishop
Janes afterward in one of the New York Conferences. On the principle
of lay delegation, the women of the Church were granted the right of
suffrage; presently they appeared in the Quarterly Conference, to vote
as class-leaders, stewards, and Sunday-school superintendents; and it
created a little excitement, a feverish state of feeling in the Church,
and the General Conference simply passed a resolution or a rule
interpreting that action on the part of women claiming this privilege
in the Quarterly Conference as being a “right,” and it was continued.
Presently, as the right of suffrage of women passed on and grew, they
voted in the Electoral Conferences, and there was no outcry made against
it. I have yet to hear of any Bishop in the Church, or any presiding
elder, or any minister challenging the right of women to vote in
Electoral Conferences or Quarterly Conferences; and yet for sixteen
years they have been voting in these bodies; voting to send laymen here
to legislate; to send laymen to the General Conference to elect Bishops
and Editors and Book Agents and Secretaries. They come to where votes
count in making up this body; they have been voting sixteen years, and
only now, when the logical result of the right of suffrage that the
General Conference gave to women appears and confronts us by women
coming here to vote as delegates, do we rise up and protest. I believe
that it is at the wrong time that the protest comes. It should have come
when the right to vote was granted to women in the Church. It is sixteen
years too late, and as was very wisely said by Dr. Potts, the objection
comes not so much from the Constitution of the Church as from the
“constitution of the men,” who challenge these women.

Now, sir, another parallel. You take the United States Government just
after the war, when the colored people of the South, the freedmen of our
land, unable to take care of themselves, their friends, that had fought
the battles of the war, in Congress determined that they should be
protected, if no longer by bayonets and cannon, that they should
be protected by placing the ballot in their hands, and the ballot was
placed in the hands of the freedman of the South by the action of the
National Congress, Congress submitting a constitutional amendment to the
legislatures of the States; and when enough of them had voted in favor
of it, and the President had signed the bill, it became an amendment to
the Constitution of the United States, granting to the people of the
South, who had been disfranchised, the right of suffrage.

Now, what does the right of suffrage do? It carries with it the right
to hold office. Where women have the privileges of voting on the school
question, they are granted the privilege of being school directors,
holding the office of superintendents, and the restriction on them stops
at that point under statute law. If you go a little further you will
find that when the freedmen were enfranchised, and they sent men of
their own color to the House of Representatives, did that body say
“stop!” “we protest, you cannot come in because of illegality”? No. They
were admitted on the face of their credentials because they had first
been granted the right of suffrage. When men of their color went to the
United States Senate and submitted their credentials, they were not
protested against, but they were admitted as members of the United
States Senate on the face of their credentials. And why? Because
the right of suffrage granted to the freedmen of the South under a
constitutional amendment of the nation, carried with it the right of
the men whom we fought to free, and did free, in an awful war, to hold
office in the nation. Now, sir, you must interpret the law somewhat by
the spirit of the times in which you live. That is a mistaken notion
to say that you must always go to the men that made the law to get the
interpretation of it. If that were true, would it not always be wise
for legislators to give their affidavits and place on file their
interpretation of the law they had confirmed, and placed on the statute
books? There are legal gentlemen in this body who will tell you that it
goes for very little when you come to interpret law. And yet you will
find this to be true, that a law must be interpreted somewhat by the
spirit of the time in which you live. Why, twenty years ago, when the
General Conference handed the question of lay delegation down to the
Annual Conferences, and the members of our Church, there was not a
woman practising law in the Supreme Court of the United States. Go back
through the history of jurisprudence of this country and in England, and
you will find that it had never been known that a woman practised law in
the Supreme Court of this country or England. But to-day women have been
admitted to practise law in the Supreme Court of the United States. No
amendment to the Constitution of the United States had to be adopted
in order to secure this privilege for them. But this is true, that the
judges of the Supreme Court, by a more liberal interpretation of the
Constitution of the United States, said, “Women may be officers of the
Supreme Court, and may practise law there.” The same kind of a spirit,
in interpreting the Discipline and the Restrictive Rules of the
Discipline of the Church, will place these women delegates in this body
where they have been sent. The same thing is true of the Supreme Court
of Pennsylvania and in the Courts of Philadelphia. There is no way out,
as my judgment sees, and as my conscience tells me, since before the
government of God man and woman are equally responsible. There is no way
out of this dilemma for this General Conference, but to say that these
women delegates shall sit in this body, where they have been sent, and
where their names have been called.

Why, take the missionary operations. The Woman’s Missionary Society is
to-day raising more money and doing more missionary work than the Parent
Missionary Society did fifty years ago. And yet men legislate concerning
the missionary operations of women, and give them no voice directly in
this body.

We bring up the temperance question here against license and in favor
of Prohibition, and we pass our resolutions after we have given our
discussions, and yet the Methodist Church has the honor of having in the
ranks of her membership--(Time called.)



ADDRESS OF REV. DR. JAMES M. BUCKLEY.


Mr. President, while the last speaker was on the floor, a modification
of a passage of Scripture occurred to me, “The enemy cometh in like
a flood, but I will lift up a standard against him.” It is somewhat
peculiar that he should begin by making a statement about one of the
most honored names in American Methodism, a statement that has been
published in the papers, and that nine tenths of this body knew as well
as he did. It must have been intended as a part of his argument, and I
regard it as of as much force as anything he said after it. But in
point of fact the question does not turn upon the person, but upon the
principle. I have received an anonymous letter containing the following
among other things, “Beware how you attack the holy cause of woman. Do
you not know that obstacles to progress are rem-o-o-v-e-d out of the
way?” The signature of that letter is ingenious. I cannot tell whether
it was a man or a woman, for it reads as follows, “A Lover of your Soul
and of Woman.” Now, Mr. President, the only candlestick that ought to be
removed out of its place is the candlestick that contains a candle that
does not burn the pure oil of truth. And I believe, sir, that with the
best of intentions the three speakers who have appeared have given us
three chapters in different styles of a work of fiction, and it is my
duty to undertake to show where they have slipped. The Apocrypha says,
“An eloquent man is known far and near; but a man of understanding
discerneth where he slippeth.” I have no claim to eloquence; never
pretended to have any; but I have a claim to some knowledge of Methodist
history, to some ability to state my sentiments, and to be without any
fear of the results, either present or prospective.

Now, Mr. President, you notice from my friends that if they cannot
command the judgment of the Conference they propose to say the women are
in, and defy us to put them out. I am sorry that my friend did not take
in the full significance of that. And they say that everybody who has
a certificate in form is in until he is put out. Why, they do not
discriminate between ordinary contested cases and a case where the
constitutional point is involved. If these women have a right here,
they have had it from the beginning by the Constitution. It is not a
contested case as to whether John Smith was voted for by the people who
ought to vote for him, or in the right place. Now, they talk of bringing
up documents here. I wrote to the Hon. George F. Edmunds, the most
distinguished member of the United States Senate, and simply put this
question, If a certificate of election in the Senate shows anything that
would prove the person unworthy of a seat, would he be seated pending an
investigation or not? He did not know what it referred to, and I read
it _verbatim_. I never mentioned the name of Methodist, and I read
_verbatim_ from his letter:

“No officer of the Senate has any right to decide any such question,
and, therefore, every person admitted to a seat is admitted by, in fact,
a vote of the Senate. The ordinary course in the Senate is, when
the credentials appear to be perfectly regular, and there is no
notorious and undisputed fact or circumstance against the qualifications
and election of a senator, to admit him at once and settle the question
of his right afterward. But there have been cases in which the Senate
declined to admit a claimant holding a regular certificate upon the
ground that enough was known to the Senate to justify its declining to
receive him until an inquiry should be had. Very truly yours,

“GEORGE F. EDMUNDS.”

Now, Mr. President, all this twaddle about the women being in is based
upon the pretence that one woman is there now. The certificate shows
that they were women, though as yet no action has been taken in regard
to them at all. If they were in, they were in with a constitutional
challenge. I champion the holy cause of women. I stand here to champion
their cause against their being introduced into this body without their
own sex having had the opportunity of expressing their opinion upon
the subject. I stand here to protect them against being connected with
movements without law or contrary to law, and those who wish to bring
them in and those who say it is the constitution of the man and
prejudice (my friend, Dr. Potts, said prejudice), they are persons,
indeed, to stand up here as, _par excellence_ the champions of women!
Is it the constitution of the men? Have you read the letter of
Mrs. Caroline Wright in the _Christian Advocate_, one of our most
distinguished American Methodist women? She does not wish to see them
here. It is the constitution of the woman in that case, and I am opposed
to their being admitted until the general sentiment of the women and the
men of our Church have an opportunity of being heard upon it.

Now, Mr. President, note these facts.... This is not a fact, but
my opinion. I solemnly believe that there was never an hour in the
Methodist Episcopal Church when it was in so great danger as it is
to-day, not on account of the admission of these women, two of whom I
believe to be as competent to sit in judgment on this question as any
man on this floor. That is not the question, as I propose to show. I
assert freely, here and now, if the women are in under the Restrictive
Rules, no power ought to put them out. If they are not in under the
Restrictive Rules, nothing has been done since, in my judgment, bearing
upon it. I am astounded that these brethren fancy that this question
has no bearing at all on the meaning of that rule. That is a wonderful
thing. But we affirm that when the Church voted to introduce lay
delegation, it not only did not intend to introduce women, but it did
intend to fill up the whole body with men. That is what we affirm. If
we can prove it, it is a tower of help to us. If we cannot prove it, we
cannot make out our case. But our contention is, that the Church did
not undertake to put women in, and it did undertake to fill up the
capacities and relations of the body with men. Now, look at it. No man
goes to the dictionary to find the meaning of the word “layman.” There
is not a man that can find out the meaning of our Restrictive Rules from
the dictionary. No living man can make out the meaning of a word in the
Restrictive Rules from Webster’s dictionary. You must get it from the
history of the Church. Who is the “General Superintendent” by Webster or
Worcester? The Methodist Episcopacy is the thing that is protected by
the Restrictive Rules. The dictionary does not tell how the Chartered
Fund shall be taken care of. Now they talk about laymen. They do not
seem, I think, to understand the history of the thing. Some of them do
not appear to understand the history of the English language. Why was
the word “layman” ever introduced? Because there was a separate class of
clergy men in the world, but there was not a class of clergywomen in the
world. If there had been, there would have been a term for laywomen and
for clergywomen. And the word was invented to distinguish the laymen
from the _clergy_men. Had there been clergywomen, there would have been
laywomen. The “laity” means all the people, men, women, and children. A
woman is one of the laity, and so is every child in the country or in
the Church one of the laity. But when you speak of man acting as a unit
he is a layman, but you never say a laywoman. You say: a woman. Abraham
Lincoln said, “All these things are done and suffered, that government
of the people, for the people, and by the people should not perish
from the earth.” Now, people, the dictionary says, are men, women, and
children. Did Abraham Lincoln mean that any women or children can take
any part in the government of the nation? No, no, no! He meant this.
When he stood up and delivered his inaugural speech, he said this, “The
intent of the lawmaker is the law.”

I give them something from one of the greatest lawyers that ever lived
to think of awhile--John Selden: “The only honest meaning of any word is
the intent of the man that wrote it.” At the time that the plan of lay
delegation was adopted, there was not a single Conference of the Church
on this wide globe, not one that distinguished between the ministry and
the laity that allowed women to take any part in its law-making body.
Some one will talk about the Quakers. But they deny the existence of the
Church, the sacraments of the Church, and make no distinction between
the ministry and the laity. Let them get up and show that there was ever
one Church in the world worthy of the name that allowed women to make
its laws. There is not one to-day. Let them name a Church, let them name
one that has allowed women in its law-making body; and yet such is the
blinding power of gush that men will say that our fathers all understood
it and proposed to put women in. The fact is, that they only proposed to
allow them to put us in. As soon as the General Conference adjourned the
women made an appeal in a public statement. They were asked to vote for
lay delegation, and were told that then they could set the Church right.
The opponents appealed to them to vote against it on the ground that it
would not make any difference to them. James Porter, Daniel Curry, Dr.
Hodgson (Professor Little thinks he was the greatest of them all) wrote
a series of articles in the _Advocate_, and it never occurred to them
that the women could come into the General Conference. Lay delegation
was only admitted by 33 votes. Had there been a change of 33 votes they
would not have come in. Every member of the New York East Conference
knows that Dr. Curry’s influence was so powerful that he could almost
get a majority against it. And they know if any one had set up an
opposition to it on this ground, the whole Conference would have voted
against the movement, and that if it had not been for Bishop Ames and
Bishop Janes, who went to the Wyoming Conference where the majority was
opposed to lay delegation, and by their influence there converted my
friend Olin and others, he knows that if this matter of the women had
been in or understood, the whole Conference would have been against it.
It would not have been possible. Dr. Potts says that it is prejudice.
Nothing of the kind. Do you know there are 12,000 Methodist ministers
that are ciphers all the time except when they vote for delegates? Are
you going to presume that when the Church has a multitude of members,
that it is going to sit here and change, by an interpretation, a
Restrictive Rule, or put in what was never in, and never understood to
be in? The Restrictive Rule fills up the ministerial delegates. Every
time you put a woman in, you put a man out. This subject has never come
up here before. The question is this, Do those Restrictive Rules mean
anything? If they do, you cannot put in anything that the fathers did
not put in. And if you put in women as lawmakers; if you can read those
Rules and put them in there, you can change any one of the Restrictive
Rules by a majority of one. And I want to say to you, that if you do
it, you will prove to the Methodist Episcopal Church that the sole
protection we have against the caprice of a majority of the General
Conference is not worth the paper it is written on. All you have to do
is to get a majority of the Conference against the Episcopacy, and then
put any interpretation, and then you get a few women admitted, and this
you call the progress of the age. Mr. Chairman, I believe in progress,
and when the Church progresses far enough, it can change this law in
a constitutional way. But it has not yet gone far enough. These men
believe that the Church has never done it, or that it is best. Dr. Flood
said that they must be brought in in the light of progress. I affirm
that Dr. Flood’s arguments all point in that direction--they must be
interpreted in the light of progress. When you do that you have got a
despotism. I want to go back to my constituents and say this: I exercise
all the power that our Charter gives me. But at the moment that anything
is proposed, and we put in what the fathers did not have before their
eyes, at that moment I stop and say, Thus far, but no farther. A
despotism is a despotism, whether it is a despotism without restraint,
the Czar with his wife, the Czar without his wife. You will turn this
house into a despotism, and you will find it difficult to defend
Methodism by its peculiar Constitution before the American people.

If you want women in, there is another way to bring them in. Send the
question around as you did for lay delegation. There was only a doubt in
the General Conference of 1868, and yet they had a sense of candor. John
M’Clintock fought in favor of taking them in. But he said, “I think it
best to send the question around.” True progress is not gained in any
other way. Some prefer a shorter cut. Let me say to you, “He that cometh
in by the door,” the same hath a right to come in; but he that cometh in
another way, is not as respectable as in the other case.



ADDRESS OF REV. DR. A.B. LEONARD.


Mr. Chairman, unfortunately for me, I have received no anonymous
letters. And so I have nothing either sensational or startling with
which to introduce my speech. I shall not speak this morning under
any fear of being removed as an obstruction, or of having my future
prospects blasted. It is my privilege, therefore, to speak to you this
morning upon this subject calmly and dispassionately, having no motive
to either suppress or exaggerate the truth. The party who wrote Dr.
Buckley, threatening to remove him as an obstruction, must be highly
gratified to know that that obstruction has already been removed.
Brother Hughey removed the obstruction, extinguished the candle, and
destroyed the candlestick.

We are to approach this question this morning, to discuss it purely upon
its merits. The ground of constitutional law was traversed thoroughly
yesterday morning in the opening speech by Dr. Potts, a speech that,
though he did not hear it himself, was heard by this body, and will
be heard through the length and breadth of the Church everywhere. It
remains for us who follow him simply to turn on a few side-lights here
and there, or to give an opportunity of viewing this question from a
new point of view. And, first, there is a line of argument that may be
helpful to some that has already been presented in part touching the
administration of our law and the interpretation of terms that is
worthy, I think, of still further consideration.

Dr. Buckley said in the New York _Christian Advocate_ of March 15th,
1888:

“The question of eligibility turns, first, upon whether the persons
claiming seats are laymen; secondly, whether they have been members of
the Church for five years consecutively, and are at least twenty-five
years of age; and, thirdly, upon whether they have been duly elected. If
women are found to be eligible under the law, they would stand upon the
same plane with men, in this particular, that they must be twenty-five
years, etc.”

Now, then, is a woman legally qualified to sit in the General Conference
as a lay delegate? Is she a layman in the sense of that word in the
Discipline? If she be not in, she cannot be introduced contrary to law
by a mere majority vote of the General Conference. The Doctor sometimes
writes more clearly than he speaks, and it was so in the occasion of
writing this article. Over against this we have one of (as Dr. Hamilton
would say) the “subtle insinuations” of the Episcopal Address, which
declares that no definition of “layman” settles the question of
eligibility as to any class of persons. For many are classed as
laymen for the purposes of lay representation, and have to do with it
officially as laymen, yet themselves are ineligible as delegates. Well,
in this case, we have the Episcopal Board over against the editor. Both
are right and both are wrong. The editor is right when he said of a
woman, if she be a lay member her right is clear as that of any duly
elected man. But he is wrong when he denies to her a right to a seat in
this body as a layman. The Episcopal Address is wrong when it says
that “no definition of the word ‘layman’ settles the question of
eligibility.” But it is right when it says, “Many are classed as laymen
for purposes of lay representation, and have to do with it officially as
lay members who are not themselves eligible as delegates.”

In the practical work of the Church, and in the administration of its
laws, women have been regarded as laymen from the beginning until now.
They pay quarterage. If they did not pay quarterage some of our salaries
would be very short. They contribute to our benevolent collections, and
if it were not for their contributions, we would not to-day be shouting
over the “Million dollars for Missions.” They pray and testify in our
class-meetings and prayer-meetings, and but for their presence among
us, many of those meetings would be as silent as the grave. They are
amenable to law, and must be tried by the very same process by which men
are tried. They are subject to the same penalty. They may be suspended;
they may be expelled. In all these respects they have been regarded as
laymen from the beginning. Indeed, we have never recognized more than
two orders in our Church. We have laymen and ministers. Up to 1872 but
one of these orders was represented in this General Conference. This
General Conference was strictly a clerical organization. But in 1872 we
marked a new epoch in Methodist history, and a new element came into
this body, and has been in all our sessions since that date. The first
step, as has been mentioned here before, was taken in 1868, when the
question of lay delegation was sent down to the members of the Church
over twenty-one years of age, and to the Annual Conferences. Dr. Queal,
if I understood him, made what is, in my judgment, a fatal concession on
this question. He distinctly stated, if I understood him correctly,
and I have not had time to refer to the report of his speech (if I
misinterpret him he will correct me), that when the motion to strike
out the word “male” was made, it was done for the purpose of putting a
“rider” on the motion and cause its defeat, and when that fact was made
known to those in favor of lay delegation, they said they would accept
it then with that interpretation, and the interpretation was that the
amendment would let women into the General Conference.

Now, that being true, all this talk about the idea of the “women coming
in” being never entertained until very recently falls to the ground. It
was present on that occasion. It was understood by those that opposed
lay delegation, and that favored it, that if they passed this amendment
and the laymen were allowed to come in, it would open the door to allow
women to come in also.

L. C. Queal said:

I think I am entitled now to correct this putting of the case.

Bishop Foss:

Are you misrepresented?

L. C. Queal:

I am misrepresented in this, that while I stated that Dr. Sherman
put that on as a “rider,” with a view to defeating the bill, that
immediately after thinking so I thought it might be the occasion of
securing the approval of the principle in the laity of the Church. That
is all I stated. All the rest of Dr. Leonard’s statement is his own
inference--a misconstruction of the fact. A.B. Leonard:

I understood Dr. Queal as I stated. I have not had time to refer to
the speech he made. I leave his statement with you, and you have the
privilege of consulting his speech as it is printed this morning, in
reference to this matter. It came to my thought very distinctly that the
idea of the possibility of women coming in was then lodged in the minds
that were both in favor of and opposed to lay delegation.

Now, then, this vote that was taken, in accordance with the order of
1868, laid the foundation stone for the introduction of women into this
body. That sent the question of lay delegation down to be voted on by
the laity of the Church. If the women were not to be recognized as laity
here, why allow them to vote on the question of the laity at all? And,
having allowed them to vote on the question of the laity, settling the
very foundation principle itself, with what consistency can we disallow
them a place in this General Conference, when by their votes they opened
the way for the laymen coming into this General Conference? Do you not
remember that we had a vote previously, and the men only voted, and that
the lay delegation scheme was defeated, and the _Methodist_, that was
published in this city, being the organ of the lay delegationists, said
that “votes ought to be weighed, not counted”? And then the question was
sent back to be voted upon by both the men and the women? And let the
laymen of this General Conference remember that they are in this body
to-day by reason of the votes of the women of the Methodist Episcopal
Church. In 1880 we went still further. We went into the work of
construing pronouns. There had been women in the Quarterly Conferences
previously to that date; but there was a mist in the air with regard
to their legality there. The General Conference by its action did not
propose to admit women to the Quarterly Conferences. It simply proposed
to clear away the mist and recognize their legal right to sit in the
Quarterly Conference. Being in the Quarterly Conference, and in the
District Conference, they have the right to vote on every question that
comes before such bodies. They vote to license ministers, to recommend
ministers to Annual Conferences, to recommend local preachers for
deacons’ and elders’ orders. They vote on sending delegates to our Lay
Electoral Conferences, and they vote in elections for delegates to Lay
Electoral Conferences, and they vote in elections for delegates from Lay
Electoral Conferences to this General Conference. And there are men
on this floor to-day that would not be in this at all if they had
not received the support of women in Lay Electoral Conferences. Now,
brethren, let it be remembered that the votes of the women to send
delegates to the Lay Electoral Conferences were never challenged until
they came here asking for seats. They were good enough to elect laymen
to this body, but not good enough to take seats with laymen in this
body. With what consistency can laymen accept seats by the votes of the
women and then deprive women of their seats? I am surprised at some of
the “subtle insinuations” of the Episcopacy concerning constitutional
law. Allow me to say at this point that, having introduced into the
Quarterly Conference these women, and having given them a right to
vote there, and in the District Conferences, and in the Lay Electoral
Conferences, in all honesty we must do one of two things, if we would
be consistent, we must go back and take up that old foundation of lay
delegation that we laid in 1868, or we must go forward and allow these
women to have their seats. In a word, we must either lay again the
“foundation of repentance from dead work, or go forward to perfection.”
 And I am not in favor of going back.

If it is true that the body of the Constitution is outside of the
Restrictive Rules, and cannot be changed except in the way prescribed
for altering the Restrictive Rules, then I say that this General
Conference has again and again been both lawless and revolutionary.
Every paragraph of the chapter, known as the Constitution, beginning
with §63, and closing with §69, was put into that Constitution without
any voice from an Annual Conference of this foot-stool. Not one single
one of them was ever submitted to an Annual Conference; §20, ¶183, stood
for many years in the Constitution of the Church, but was transferred
bodily from that Constitution by the General Conference to the position
it now occupies. You come and tell us to-day that we cannot change the
Constitution outside of the Restrictive Rules without going down to the
Annual Conferences; it is too late in the day to say that. We have made
too much history on that point. The present plan of lay delegation was
not submitted to the Annual Conferences. Bishop Simpson definitely
stated when he reported to the General Conference the result of the vote
ordered in 1868 that the question simply of the introduction of the
laity into the General Conference was presented to be voted upon by the
laity and by the Annual Conferences, but the “plan” was not submitted
to either to be voted upon, and the “plan” for lay delegation by which
these lay brethren occupy their seats here this morning was made in
every jot and tittle by the General Conference without any reference to
the Annual Conferences at all.

I want to know, then, by what propriety we come here in this General
Conference to say that there can be no change of Part I. of the
Constitution outside of the Restrictive Rules. The General Conference
cannot alter our articles of faith, it cannot abolish our Episcopacy; it
cannot deprive our members of a right to trial and appeal. These come
under the Restrictive Rules, and cannot be touched by this body without
the consent of the Annual Conferences; but all else has been from
beginning, and is now in the hands of the General Conference. Let it be
remembered that this General Conference is a unique body. It is at once
a legislative and a judicial body; in the former capacity it makes law;
in the latter capacity it has the power to construe law.

It is at once a Congress, if you please, to enact law, and a supreme
court to interpret law. Now, then, in admitting women to our General
Conference, we are simply construing the Constitution, and not changing
the Constitution. The Supreme Court of the United States gives decisions
on the construing of the Constitution, and who ever heard of a decision
of the Supreme Court being sent down to be ratified by the State
Legislatures? The Supreme Court of the United States construes the
Constitution, without any reference to the State Legislatures, and so
we construe law without any reference to the Annual Conferences. If we
touch the law inside of the Restrictive Rules, we must go down to the
Annual Conferences. Outside we are free to legislate as we may.

What is the Constitution for? The Constitution is designed simply to
limit the powers of the Legislature. In my own State of Ohio, for
illustration, we have an article in our Constitution that forbids our
Legislature to license the liquor traffic, but our legislators give a
license under the guise of taxing, but they cannot give us a license
law in form. The Constitution prevents it. There are States that have
Constitutions that have no word to say about the liquor traffic at all,
while they may either tax, license, or prohibit.

This is a fact that is well settled, that the Constitution is a
limitation of legislative power, and where there is no such limitation
there is no restriction.



ADDRESS OF REV. DR. ALFRED WHEELER.


Mr. President, it will be well for us, so far as we have progressed in
this discussion, to see how near and how far we agree. It is admitted by
the friends of the report, or by the committee, that this is a question
of law, and to be decided exclusively upon principles of law. So far as
those who are opposed to the report have spoken, they conceive, as I
understand it, that the position taken by the committee is taken by
those who are advocating its adoption. Then we are agreed that it is not
a matter of sentiment, it is not a matter of chivalry. There is no place
for knighthood, or any of its laws, or any other of the principles that
dominated the contests of the knights of old. If it were a matter of
knighthood there is not a man on this floor that would deem it necessary
to bring a lance into this body. All would be peace and quiet.

There are none that would hail with more joy and gladness the women of
the Church to a seat in this body than those of us who now, under the
circumstances, oppose their coming in.

It is not either a matter of progressive legislation regarding the
franchise of colored men, or of anybody else in the country. It is a
question of law, Methodist law, and Methodist law alone.

Now, so far as the intention is concerned of those who made the law, I
do not see how those who have kept themselves conversant with the
history of lay delegation can for a moment claim that it was even the
most remote intention of those who introduced lay delegation into the
General Conference to bring in the women, and for us to transfer the
field now toward women, in view of their magnificent work in the last
ten or fifteen years, back to twenty years, is to commit an anachronism
that would be fatal to all just interpretation of law.

I myself was in the very first meeting that was ever called to initiate
the movement that at last brought in lay delegation. I voted for it; I
wrote for it; I spoke for it in the General Conference and in the Annual
Conferences. I was a member of the first lay committee, or Committee on
Lay Delegation, that was appointed here by the General Conference in
1868. And during all these various processes of discussion, so far as I
know, the thought was never suggested that under it women would come in
to represent the laity, nor was it ever suggested that it was desirable
that they should; so that the intention of the law-maker could never
have embraced this design--the design of bringing women into the General
Conference. I leave that.

Now, I claim that the General Conference has no legal authority to admit
them here. We are not an omnipotent body. I know that the Supreme Court
of the United States, in that contest between the Northern Church, or
the Methodist Episcopal Church, and the Church South, decided that the
General Conference was the Methodist Episcopal Church. I used that
argument myself upon the Conference floor in 1868, that the General
Conference could, without any other process, by mere legislation,
introduce the laity into this body. I claimed there and then that,
according to that decision, the Methodist Episcopal Church was in the
General Conference. The General Conference refused to accept that
endorsement of that Court, or that proposition concerning the
prerogatives of this body. And through all the processes that have
been ordered concerning the introduction of lay delegation that
interpretation of the constitution of the Church has been repudiated.
The Church herself rejected the interpretation that the Supreme Court
placed upon her constitution, and as a loyal son of the Church I
accepted her interpretation of her own constitution, so that now I claim
that the General Conference has no authority whatever to change the
_personnel_ of the General Conference without the vote of the Annual
Conferences. Before it can be done constitutionally, you must obtain the
consent of the brethren of the Annual Conferences, and I am in favor of
that, and of receiving an affirmative vote on their part. But until this
is done I do not see how they can come in only as we trample the organic
law of our Church under our feet. And to do this, there is nothing but
peril ahead of us.

A simple body may disregard law with comparative impunity, but an
organic body that is complicated, complex in its nature, will find its
own security in adhering earnestly, strictly, and everlastingly, to the
law that that body passes for the government of its own conduct.

Let us see, now, with regard to this Restrictive Rule. As I have said,
it has been admitted all along that the action of the Annual Conferences
must be secured. Here comes in the decision of the General Conference of
1872. I do not need to recite it. But let us bear in mind two facts. One
is, that this General Conference is a legislative body, and that it
is also a judicial body. As a judicial body, it interprets law; as
a legislative body, it makes law. The General Conference of 1872
interpreted law, and the General Conference may reverse itself with
just as much propriety as a court can reverse itself. And if it be
the judgment of this General Conference that that interpretation was
incorrect, it is perfectly competent for this Conference to say so, and
have its action correspond with its own decision.

There is another point. The case that was before the General Conference
of 1876 was a specific case. It was the case of the relation that
local preachers sustain to the Church, a particular case. This is the
principle of all decisions in law, that when a particular case is
decided in general terms, the scope and comprehension of the decision
must be limited to the particular case itself. And if a court in its
decision embraces more than was involved in the particular case, it has
no force whatever. And as this was a particular case submitted to
the General Conference, and the decision was in general terms, it
comprehends simply the case that was before it, and cannot be advanced
to comprehend more. And the reason of this is very obvious; for if it
was not the case, then cases might be brought before the court for its
decision that had never occurred.

There is another point I wish to notice. The General Conference of 1880
did not see the effect that legislation would have by admitting women
to certain offices. Certain affirmative legislation is also negative
legislation. When saloons are permitted to sell in quantities of one
gallon, it forbids to sell in quantities of less than one gallon; when
it says you can sell in quantities of one barrel, it forbids them to
sell in quantities of two. When the General Conference of 1880
decided that women should be eligible in the Quarterly Conferences as
superintendents of Sunday-schools, class-leaders, and as stewards, by
that very affirmative conclusion, the subject was passed upon about
their taking any other position. That, I think, must be regarded as
sound, and a just interpretation of the law.

But suppose it is not; the General Conference of 1880 certainly did not
understand the matter as the General Conference of 1872 did. For if it
had, there would have been no necessity for legislation at all, there
would have been no need for putting in the law as it now stands,
that the pronoun “he,” wherever employed, shall not be considered
as prohibiting women from holding the offices of Sunday-school
Superintendent, Class Leader, and Steward.

Now, for this reason, and for the further reason that it is a matter of
immense importance that we guard against despotism, I oppose changing
the _personnel_ of the General Conference without my Annual Conference
has a right to vote upon it, and it is voted upon. Despotism is a
suitable term. A General Conference may become a despot, and just as
soon as it goes outside of its legitimate province, then it usurps, and
so far as it usurps, it becomes despotic, and is a despot; and you and
I, so far as our Annual Conferences are concerned, do well to regard
with a deep jealousy an infringement upon our organic rights. The
only safety of the Church is the equipoise that is constituted by the
relation the Annual Conferences sustain to the General Conference,
and far safer is it for us to bring these women of the Church, elect,
honorable women, into the General Conference of the Church by the same
way that their husbands and brothers are here.

There is another thought that I wish to suggest. What are the
possibilities with regard to lay delegation, supposing the design of
those who wish to bring women in without further action is successful?
You make lay delegation a farce in this body. The presiding elders and
pastors of the Church may act in co-operation, and they can elect
their own wives as delegates to this General Conference, and thus
lay delegation comes to be a farce. Some of you may laugh at this
suggestion, but it is an _in posse_, and it may easily be made an _in
esse_. It is important to us that the laity should hold the place they
have by the regulations we have, and they should be changed only to make
them more perfect.

No body is safe without adherence to law. We may set lightly by law; we
may regard it as a thing to be laid aside at the command of excitement
or passion, but the nation that does that is a doomed nation, and the
Church that does that has its history already written. The only safe
course for us to pursue is to pursue the wise, careful, judicious,
and conservative--I mean every word--and conservative course we have
heretofore pursued through all our history. When we boast of what
Methodism has done, or what she is going to do, let us remember it is
because of her firm adherence to law.

It is with her as it is with the German nation and the Anglo-Saxon
race--everywhere our glory is in our adherence to wise laws, and if we
pass unwise laws, in repealing them in the same wise.



ADDRESS OF GENERAL CLINTON B. FISK.


Mr. President and Brethren, to an onlooker of this remarkable scene,
this great debate now in the third day of its progress must be
suggestive of some of the marvellous plays, woven into song, which have
made the hearts of the thronging multitudes who have crowded this place
of meeting in the past throb alternately with emotions of hope and fear
as to the outcome of the parties involved in plot and counterplot. The
visitors to this General Conference, seated in their boxes and in the
family circle, Will say surely these honored men of God who have been
called as Superintendents of the affairs of our great conquering Church,
these chosen ministers of reconciliation and peace, these _male_
laymen called by their brethren to their high places in this General
Conference, whose names at home are the synonym of chivalrous
goodness--surely all these of rank and talent and authority, whose able
and eloquent words have been ringing through the arches and dome of this
temple of music on the wrong side of the question, are but simply acting
the parts assigned them. In the final scene they will join hands around
the eligible women elect, who, in obedience to the call of the laity in
their several Conferences, are in their seats with us, and say, “Whom
God hath joined, let not _male_ put asunder.” My brothers, let us
briefly restate the case. Five noble women of the laymen of the
Methodist Episcopal Church have been chosen as delegates to this General
Conference under the Constitution and by the forms prescribed by the
laws of the Church. As they enter, or attempt to enter, the portals of
this great assemblage they hear a voice from the platform, in words not
to be misunderstood, “Thou shalt not,” and voices from all parts of the
house take up the prohibitory words, and supplement the voices of the
Bishops, “Thou shalt not.” And one would think, from the vehement
oratory of the resisting delegates of this General Conference, that the
foundations of the Church were in imminent peril by the presence of
these “elect ladies” among us.

Let us turn back a moment, and review the history of the rise, progress,
and triumph of the cause of lay representation. I claim to know a little
something about it, as I was on the skirmish line in the conflict, and
in all its battles fought until the day of victory.

In 1861, to the male members of the Church, was submitted the question
of lay representation. It failed of securing a majority vote. Had it
carried, there would have been plausibility in the argument this
day made against the eligibility of women to seats in this General
Conference. The evolution of the succeeding eight years lifted woman to
a higher appreciation of her position in the Methodist Church, and her
rights and privileges became the theme of discussion throughout the
bounds of the Church. Among the champions for woman was that magnificent
man, that grand old man, Dr. Daniel D. Whedon, who, in discussing this
question, said:

“If it is _rights_ they talk of, every competent member of the Church of
Christ, of either sex and of every shade of complexion, has equal
original rights. Those rights, they may be assured, when that question
comes fairly up, will be firmly asserted and maintained.”

And in answer to the expected fling, “But you are a woman’s rights man,”
 he replied:

“We are a human rights man. And our mother was a human being. And our
wives, sisters, and daughters are all human beings. And that these human
beings are liable as any other human beings to be oppressed by the
stronger sex, and as truly need in self-defence a check upon oppression,
the history of all past governments and legislation does most terribly
demonstrate. What is best in the State is not indeed with us the
question; but never, with our consent, shall the Church of the living
God disfranchise her who gave to the world its divine Redeemer. When
that disfranchisement comes to the debate, may the God of eternal
righteousness give us strength equal to our will to cleave it to the
ground!”

The General Conference of 1868, after full discussion, submitted the
question of Lay Representation to a vote of all the members of the
Church, male and female, thus recognizing the women as laymen, as
belonging to the great body of the laity, and as vitally interested in
the government of the Church, and having rights under that government.
During the debate on the report of the Committee on the plan for
submitting the question as in 1861, to the male members, Dr. Sherman
moved to strike out the word “male.” While that motion was under
consideration, Dr. Slicer, of Baltimore, said, “If it were the last
moment I should spend, and the last articulate sound I should utter,
I should speak for the wives, mothers, and daughters of the Methodist
Episcopal Church.... I am for women’s rights, sir, _wherever church
privileges are concerned_.”

Dr. Sherman’s motion was carried by a vote of 142 to 70, and the
question of lay representation was submitted to all the members of the
Church over twenty-one years of age. The General Conference did not ask
women to vote on a proposition that only male members of the Church
should be represented in the General Conference, and it did not then
enter the thought of any clear-headed man that women were to be deprived
of their rights to a seat in the General Conference. There were a few
noisy, disorderly brethren who cried out from their seats, “No, no,” but
they were silenced by the presiding Bishop and the indignation of the
right thinking, orderly delegates.

What does the Rev. Dr. David Sherman, the mover of the motion to strike
out the word “male,” now say of the prevailing sentiment on that day of
great debate? I have his freshly written words in response to an inquiry
made a few weeks ago. On March 21st he made this statement:

“Some of us believed that women were laymen, that the term ‘men’ in the
Discipline, as elsewhere, often designated not sex, but genus; and that
those who constituted a main part of many of our churches should have a
voice in determining under what government they would live. We believed
in the rightful equality of the sexes before the law, and hence that
women should have the same right as men to vote and hold office. The
Conference of 1868 was a reform body, and it seemed possible to take
these views on a stage; hence the amendment was offered, and carried
with a rush and heartiness even beyond my expectations....The latter
interpretation of the Conference making all not members of Conferences
laymen, fully carried out these views, as they were understood at the
moment by the majority party. Some, to be sure, cried out against it,
but their voices were not heard amid the roar of victory. Who can go
back of the interpretation of the supreme court of the Church?”

It is amazing that brethren will stand here to-day and utterly ignore
the decision of our Supreme Court in defining who are laymen. Could
the utterances of any Court be more definite and clear than those of the
General Conference when it said, “The General Conference holds that
in all matters connected with the election of lay delegates the word
‘laymen’ must be understood to include all the members of the Church who
are not members of the Annual Conferences”? This decision must include
women among the laity of the Church. I know it is said that this means
the classification of local preachers. We respond that that only appears
from the debate. The General Conference was settling a great principle
in which the personal rights and privileges of two thirds of the
membership of our Church were involved. Surely, our Supreme Court would
have made a strange decision had they, in defining laymen, excepted
women. Let us see how it would look in cold type had they said, “The
General Conference holds that in all matters connected with the election
of lay delegates the word laymen must be understood to include all the
members of the Annual Conferences, _and who are not women_.” We would
have become the laughing-stock of Christendom had we made such an
utterance. The Church universal in all ages has always divided its
membership into two great classes, and two only, the clergy and
the laymen, using the terms laity and laymen synonymously and
interchangeably. See Bingham’s “Antiquities,” Blackstone’s
“Commentaries,” Schaffs “History,” and kindred authorities. It is sheer
trifling for sensible males to talk about a distinction between lay_men_
and lay_women_.

Women were made class-leaders, stewards, and Sunday-school
superintendents, and employed in these several capacities long before
the specific interpretations of the pronouns were made. They were so
appointed and employed in Saint Paul’s Church in this city during the
pastorate of that sainted man, John M’Clintock, in 1860, and could the
voice of that great leader and lover of the Church reach us to day from
the skies it would be in protest against the views presented in this
debate by the supporters of the committee’s report and its amendment.

It is a well-established and incontrovertible principle of law that any
elector is eligible to the office for which said elector votes, unless
there be a _specific enactment discriminating against the elector_. Our
law says that a lay delegate shall be twenty-five years of age, and five
years a member of the Methodist Episcopal Church. It does not say that a
delegate must not be a woman, or must be a man.

Women are eligible to membership in this General Conference. Women have
been chosen delegates as provided by law. They are here in their seats
ready for any duty on committees, or otherwise, as they may be invited.
We cannot turn them out and slam the door on their exit. It would be
revolutionary so to do by a simple vote of this body. It would be a
violation of the guarantees of personal liberty, a holding of the
just rights of the laity of the Church. We cannot exclude them from
membership in the General Conference, except by directing the Annual
Conferences to vote on the question of their exclusion. Are we ready to
send that question in that form down to the Annual Conferences for their
action? I trust that a large majority of this General Conference will
say with emphasis we are not ready for any such action. The women of our
Methodism have a place in the heart of the Church from which they cannot
be dislodged. They are our chief working members. They are at the very
front of every great movement of the Church at home or abroad. In the
spirit of rejoicing consecration our matrons and maids uphold the
banner of our Lord in every conflict with the enemy of virtue and
righteousness. Looking down upon us from these galleries, tier upon
tier, are the magnificent leaders of the Woman’s Foreign and the Woman’s
Home Missionary Societies. Our women are at the front of the battle now
waging against the liquor traffic in our fair land, and they will not
cease their warfare until this nation shall be redeemed from the curse
of the saloon. God bless all these women of our great conquering Church
of the Redeemer.

Twenty years ago Bishop Hurst accompanied me on a leisurely tour of
continental Europe. In the old city of Nuremberg we wandered among
the old churches and market-places, where may be seen the marvellous
productions of that evangel of art, Albert Durer. In an old schloss in
that city may be found the diary of Albert Durer, almost four centuries
old. In it you may read as follows: “Master Gebhart, of Antwerp, has
a daughter seventeen years old, and she has illuminated the head of a
Saviour for which I gave a florin. It is a marvel that a woman could
do so much.” Three and a half centuries later Rosa Bonheur hangs her
master-piece in the chief places of the galleries of the world, and
Harriet Hosmer’s studio contributes many of the best marbles that adorn
the parlors of Europe and America, and no one wonders that a woman can
do so much. From that day when Martin Luther, the protesting monk, and
Catherine Von Bora, the ex-nun, stood together at the altar and the
twain became one, woman has by her own heroism, by her faith in her sex
and in God, who made her, fought a good fight against the organized
selfishness of those who would withhold from her any right or privilege
to which she is entitled, and has lifted herself from slavery and
barbarism to a place by the side of man, where God placed her in
paradise, his equal in tact and talent, moving upon the world with her
unseen influences, and making our Christian civilization what it is
to-day. Let not our Methodism in this her chiefest council say or do
ought that shall lead the world to conclude that we are retreating from
our advanced position of justice to the laity of the Church. Let us
rather strengthen our guarantee of loving protection of every right and
privilege of every member of our Church, without distinction of race,
color, or sex. Amen and Amen.



ADDRESS OF JUDGE Z. P. TAYLOR.


Mr. President and Gentlemen, when elected a delegate I had no opinion on
the constitutional question here involved. But I had then, and I have
now, a sympathy for the women, and a profound admiration of their work.
No man on this floor stands more ready and more willing to assist them
by all lawful and constitutional means to every right and and to every
privilege enjoyed by men.

But, sir, notwithstanding this admiration and sympathy, I cannot lose
sight of the vital question before the General Conference now and here.

That question is this: Under the Constitution and Restrictive Rules of
the Methodist Episcopal Church are women eligible as lay delegates in
this General Conference? If they are, then this substitute offered by
Dr. Moore does them an injustice, because it puts a cloud upon their
right and title to seats upon this floor. If they are not, then this
body would be in part an unconstitutional body if they are admitted.

It follows that whoever supports this substitute either wrongs the elect
ladies or violates the Constitution. If they are constitutionally a part
of this body, seat them; if they are not, vote down this substitute, and
adopt the report of the committee, with the amendment of Dr. Neely, and
then let them in four years hence in the constitutional way. After
the most careful study of the vital question in the light of history,
ecclesiastical, common, and constitutional law, it is my solemn and
deliberate judgment that women are not eligible as lay delegates in this
body.

Facts, records, and testimonials conclusively prove that in 1868, when
the General Conference submitted the matter of lay delegation to the
entire membership of the Church, the idea of women being eligible was
not the intent. The intent was to bring into the General Conference a
large number of men of business experience, who could render service
by their knowledge and experience touching the temporal affairs of the
Church. When the principle of admitting lay delegates was voted upon
by the laity, this idea, and no other, was intended. When the Annual
Conferences voted for the principle and the plan, this and this only was
their intent.

When the General Conference, by the constitutional majority, acted in
favor of admitting the lay delegates provisionally elected, this idea,
and none other, actuated them. It was not the intent then to admit
women, but to admit men only, and the intent must govern in construing a
Constitution.

Dr. Fisk said Judge Cooley is a high authority on constitutional law. I
admit it, and am happy to say that I was a student of his over a quarter
of a century ago, and ever since then have studied and practised
constitutional law, and I am not here to stultify my judgment by
allowing sentiment and impulse to influence my decision.

Those opposing the report of the committee, with few exceptions, admit
that it was not the intent and purpose, when the Constitution and
Restrictive Rules were amended, to admit women as lay delegates. They
claim, however, that times have changed, and now propose to force a
construction upon the language not intended by the laity, the Annual
Conferences, or the General Conference at the time of the amendment. Can
this be done without an utter violation of law? I answer, No.

In the able address read by Bishop Merrill, containing the views of the
Board of Bishops, he says:


“For the first time in our history several ‘elect ladies’ appear,
regularly certified from Electoral Conferences, as lay delegates to this
body. In taking the action which necessitates the consideration of the
question of their eligibility, the Electoral Conferences did not consult
the Bishops as to the law in the case, nor do we understand it to be our
duty to define the law for these Conferences; neither does it appear
that any one is authorized to decide questions of law in them. The
Electoral Conferences simply assumed the lawfulness of this action,
being guided, as we are informed, by a declarative resolution of the
General Conference of 1872, defining the scope of the word ‘laymen,” in
answer to a question touching the classification and rights of ordained
local and located ministers. Of course, the language of that resolution
is carried beyond its original design when applied to a subject not
before the body when it was adopted, and not necessarily involved in the
language itself. This also should be understood, that no definition of
the word ‘laymen’ settles the question of eligibility as to any class
of persons, for many are classed as laymen for the purposes of lay
representation, and have to do with it officially as laymen, who are
themselves not eligible as delegates. Even laymen who are confessedly
ineligible, who are not old enough to be delegates, or have not been
members long enough, may be stewards, class-leaders, trustees, local
preachers and exhorters, and, as such, be members of the Quarterly
Conference, and vote for delegates to the Electoral Conference without
themselves being eligible.

“The constitutional qualifications for eligibility cannot be modified by
a resolution of the General Conference, however sweeping, nor can the
original meaning of the language be enlarged. If women were included in
the original constitutional provision for lay delegates, they are here
by constitutional right. If they were not so included, it is beyond the
power of this body to give them membership lawfully, except by the
formal amendment of the Constitution, which cannot be effected without
the consent of the Annual Conferences. In extending to women the highest
spiritual privileges, in recognizing their gifts, and in providing for
them spheres of Christian activity, as well as in advancing them to
positions of official responsibility, ours has been a leader of the
Churches, and gratefully do we acknowledge the good results shown in
their enlarged usefulness, and in the wonderful developments of their
power to work for God, which we take as evidences of the divine approval
of the high ground taken. In all reformatory and benevolent enterprises,
especially in the Temperance, Missionary, and Sunday-school departments
of Church-work, their success is marvellous, and challenges our highest
admiration. Happily no question of competency or worthiness is involved
in the question of their eligibility as delegates. Hitherto the
assumption underlying the legislation of the Church has been that they
were ineligible to official positions, except by special provision of
law. In harmony with this assumption, they have been made eligible,
by special enactment, of the offices of steward, class-leader, and
Sunday-school superintendent, and naturally the question arises as
to whether the necessity for special legislation, in order to their
eligibility to those specified offices, does not indicate similar
necessity for special provision in order to their eligibility as
delegates, and if so it is further to be considered that the offices of
steward, class-leader, and Sunday-school superintendent may be created
and filled by simple enactments of the General Conference itself; but to
enter the General Conference, and form part of the law-making body
of the Church, requires special provision in the Constitution, and,
therefore, such provision as the General Conference alone cannot make.”


Now, sir, this language moves forward with a grasp of logic akin to that
used by Chief Justice Marshall, or that eminent jurist, Cooley, from
whom I beg leave to quote. Cooley, in his great work on “Constitutional
Limitations,” says:


“A Constitution is not made to mean one thing at one time, and another
at some subsequent time, when the circumstances may have changed as
perhaps to make a different rule in the case seem desirable. A principal
share of the benefit expected from written Constitutions would be
lost, if the rules they establish were so flexible as to bend to
circumstances, or be modified by public opinion.

“The meaning of the Constitution is fixed when it is adopted, and is not
different at any subsequent time.”


This same great author says:

“Intent governs. The object of construction applied to a written
constitution is to give effect to the intent of the people in adopting
it. In the case of written laws it is the intent of the lawgiver that is
to be enforced.

“But it must not be forgotten in construing our constitutions that in
many particulars they are but the legitimate successors of the great
charters of English liberty whose provisions declaratory of the rights
of the subject have acquired a well understood meaning which the people
must be supposed to have had in view in adopting them. We cannot
understand these unless we understand their history.

“It is also a very reasonable rule that a State Constitution shall be
understood and construed in the light, and by the assistance of the
common law, and with the fact in view that its rules are still in force.

“It is a maxim with the Courts that statutes in derogation of the common
law shall be construed strictly.”

Here, sir, we have the language of Judge Cooley himself. It is as clear
as the noonday’s sun, and he utterly repudiates the pernicious doctrine
that the Constitution can grow and develop so as to mean one thing when
it is adopted, and something else at another time. You can never inject
anything into a Constitution by construction which was not in it when
adopted. And you are bound, according to all rules of construction, to
give it the construction which was intended when adopted. No man of
common honesty and common sense dares to assert on this floor that it
was the intent when the Constitution was amended to admit women as lay
delegates. It follows inevitably that they are not constitutionally
eligible, and to admit them is to violate the Constitution of the
Church, which, as a Court, we are in honor bound not to do.

It has been asserted with gravity that the right to vote for a person
for office carries with it the right to be voted for unless prohibited
by positive enactment. This proposition is not true, and never has been.
We have seen, when the Constitution and Restrictive Rules were amended,
the intent was to admit men only as lay delegates. No General Conference
can, by resolution or decision, change the Constitution and Restrictive
Rules. Grant, if you please, that the General Conference, by its action
in 1880, had power to make women eligible in the Quarterly Conference as
stewards and class-leaders, this could not qualify her to become a lay
delegate in the law-making body of the Church. The qualifications of lay
delegates to this body must inhere in the Constitution and Restrictive
Rules, according to their intent and meaning when adopted. It is
fundamental law that where general disabilities exist, not simply by
statute, but by common law, the removal of lesser disabilities does not
carry with it the removal of the greater ones.

Legislation qualifying women to vote in Wyoming and elsewhere had to be
coupled also with positive enactments qualifying her to be voted for,
otherwise she would have been ineligible to office. This is so, and I
defy any lawyer to show the contrary.

§3, Article I, Constitution of the United States, reads:

“The Senate of the United States shall be composed of two Senators from
each State, chosen by the Legislature thereof for six years. No person
shall be a Senator who shall not have attained to the age of thirty
years, and been nine years a citizen of the United States, and who shall
not, when elected, be an inhabitant of the State for which he shall be
chosen.”


These and no other qualifications are worded or found in the
Constitution of the United States touching the qualification of
Senators. Is there a layman on this floor who will dare assert that
under the Constitution of the United States women are eligible as
Representatives or Senators? Words of common gender are exclusively
used as applied to the qualification of Senators. The words persons and
citizens include women the same as they include men. Nevertheless, in
the light of the past, I am bold to assert, that any man who would dare
stand in the Senate of the United States, and contend that women are
eligible to the office of United States Senators, would be regarded by
the civilized world as a person of gush and void of judgment.

Article 14, United States Constitution, §1:


“All persons born or naturalized in the United States and subject to the
jurisdiction thereof, are citizens of the United States, wherein they
reside. No State shall make or enforce any law which shall abridge the
_privileges_ or _immunities_ of citizens of the United States; nor shall
any State deprive any person of life, liberty, or property without due
process of law, _nor deny to any person within its jurisdiction the
equal protection of the laws_.”


(Tax case and what was decided.) (Mrs. Minor _vs_. Judges of Election.
53 Mo. 68.)

The first case indicates that the word citizen when affecting property
rights includes corporations.

The second, that the word person, when it relates to the woman claiming
the right to vote, does not confer upon her that right.

The language is: No State shall make or enforce any law which shall
abridge the privileges or immunities of any citizen of the United
States. Nevertheless, a Republican Circuit Judge held this language did
not entitle Mrs. Minor to vote. A democratic Supreme Court of Missouri
held the same, and the Supreme Court of the United States, in an able
opinion written by men known as the friends of women, conclusively
demonstrated that these constitutional guarantees did not confer upon
woman the right to vote. Why? Because, from time immemorial, this right
had not obtained in favor of woman, and these words of common gender
should not be so construed as to confer this right, since it was not
intended when made to affect their status in this regard.





*** End of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "Samantha Among the Brethren, Complete" ***

Copyright 2023 LibraryBlog. All rights reserved.



Home